Rule of The Aurora King An Ene - Nisha J Tuli-201-473

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 273

“The Woodlands armies, of course.


“Your armies are less than half the size of mine,” Rion said, addressing
Wolf now. “That’s no incentive.”
“Help me get the Crown from my mother,” Serce said, and Rion sat up.
“And how should I do that?” Rion asked, an eyebrow raised.
“Let’s not play games, Your Majesty.” The words hung in the air between
them. An accusation. A gauntlet set ablaze and slapped down on a field of
dead grass.
There were plenty of rumors about how the previous Aurora King had
been forced to descend into the Evanescence, though it was never spoken of
out loud. To even suggest such a thing was the height of taboo. But if
anyone knew how to make it happen, Serce had a hunch it was the ruthless
Imperial Fae seated before her.
Rion said nothing to that, only tipping his head and waiting for whatever
she could offer him next.
Serce then took a deep breath, forging on, knowing that what she was
about to say next would cross a bridge that would crumble to dust behind
her, never to be resurrected. “And then you’ll have the armies of Heart at
your disposal, as well. We’ll help you take over the rest of Ouranos.
Together, we’d be unstoppable. You know it’s true.”
As her voice fell silent, the fuse she had just lit crackled between them.
“You would do that? Give Ouranos to me?”
“As long as you leave Heart and The Woodlands to us,” she said quickly.
“They belong to us and us alone.”
“Why?”
“Because I want my crown, and I will do anything to get it.” She said it
simply, knowing that a male like Rion would understand this raw call to
power for power’s sake alone.
Rion rubbed his chin, considering her offer.
“That seems fair enough,” he said slowly, as if testing the words and
deciding if he really meant them. “I’ll consider it.”
Serce dipped her head. “That’s all I ask,” she said, feigning subservience,
hoping to appeal to his ego.
A shrewd look narrowed his gaze as he studied her and then Wolf, who
was still bouncing the baby on his knee as it cooed and gurgled.
“As you think on it, please remain as our guests for a few days,” Wolf
said. “The Sage Pear Grove is spectacular at this time of year, and I’d love
to take you for a tour.”
Rion stood, buttoning up his jacket and tipping his chin. Meora followed
his lead and crossed the space, taking the baby from Wolf and hitching him
to her hip.
“Thank you,” Serce said, approaching Rion, who gave her another once-
over.
“We’ll talk again, Serce. It’s clear we have similar interests. Perhaps
there are many things we can do together.”
She nodded with a strained smile. She didn’t trust him for a moment, but
she needed him to consider her proposal and, hopefully, agree. For now, she
would pretend they had aligned interests.
Because Serce wasn’t to be trusted, either.
“Do you think he’ll say yes?” she asked Wolf as they retired to his
bedchamber later that evening. Rion and Meora had declined to join them
for dinner, claiming they were tired from travel and that they would see
Wolf and Serce tomorrow.
A relief, really. They had called off the planned formal affair and had
instead eaten a casual supper in the same sitting room where they’d
received the Aurora King and Queen earlier.
“I think he will,” Wolf said. “You’ve offered him more than half of
Ouranos. His own ambition has always blinded him and he won’t turn that
chance down. He just wants to let you stew a bit.”
Wolf dropped on the brown leather sofa that sat under a large window
and pulled Serce onto his lap.
“You seemed quite taken with the baby,” she said carefully, as his arms
wrapped around her.
“I love children. You know that.”
She swallowed and nodded. “I do. You’ve never said you wanted
children. With me, I mean.”
Wolf grinned, his beautiful face transforming and his deep green eyes
sparkling.
“Serce, you are the only woman I have met in this life or any life who I’d
want to have children with. You’re mine now and forever. I only worried it
was too early to say such things, and you haven’t shown much interest in a
child.”
She looped her arms around his neck. “Perhaps I could be persuaded. The
boy was rather…cute.” She wrinkled her nose, and Wolf barked out a hearty
laugh. He cupped the back of her neck, and bent her down for a kiss.
“Do you have any idea how beautiful you are?” he asked, and she smiled.
“Do you have any idea how sexy it was watching you care for that child?
There was something so…paternal about you.”
She ground her hips into his lap, and he groaned as his hand clamped
down on her waist.
“If I’d known that, I would’ve invited every child in the kingdom to
visit.”
She snorted out a laugh. “Don’t you dare.”
He chuckled before he kissed her again.
“We’ll need to send for the High Priestess soon,” she said next, starting
to pull at the laces of his shirt, exposing a taut sliver of his bronzed skin.
She slid her hands under the fabric, savoring the hard and unyielding flesh
of his refined body.
“I’ll send a messenger first thing in the morning,” he replied, nuzzling
her throat, his hand sliding into the slit in her robe, where he found her bare
skin. “What exactly did she tell you in her letter?”
“She said it’s possible for two Primaries to join their Artefacts, though
it’s never been done in living memory as far as she was aware. But she
recalled reading about it in the Book of Night. She promised to look for the
reference, and then hopefully the details on how we might accomplish it.”
His hand slid higher, tugging open the tie holding her robe together, the
silken fabric revealing the scraps of her lacy underwear. Wolf made a low
sound in his throat as he licked her neck and slid his hand along her
stomach.
“And then what?” he asked, nipping the space behind her ear. She gasped
as his hand slid lower, teasing the inside of her thigh.
“And then our magic will join, similar to when a Primary bonds to a High
Fae or a human, but she believes bonding two Primaries will have a tenfold
effect on our magic.”
Wolf slipped his hand between her legs, teasing her through the already
soaked fabric of her underwear. She parted her legs and tilted her hips as he
pushed aside the silk and slipped his thick finger through her wetness.
“What else, Serce?” His voice was husky, the tone rough.
“Then you and I will become the two most powerful rulers in Ouranos.”
His finger pushed inside her and she cried out as his thumb circled her clit.
“And…we’ll…crush Rion. And conquer…every…corner…of…the…
continent.”
Her words came out clipped as Wolf used his other hand to pull at the
lace covering her breasts and sucked on a nipple, his tongue teasing it
before he bit down with a sharp flash of pain that made her whimper.
He continued to pump his hand in and out of her, and she rode it with
abandon, seeking her release that wound tighter and tighter.
“You will be the most powerful, Serce,” he said, his words low and
dangerous. “And I will stand beside you—my queen, my heart, my mate—
and help you take it all.”
Chapter Twenty-one

Lor

E ven the dim absence of light in The Aurora is an assault on my senses


as my eyes crack open the next morning. A whiff of food turns my
stomach, and I squeeze my eyes closed, willing my nausea to settle. I hear
the clink of utensils and the sound of liquid being poured into a cup.
A warm body presses against me, and I reach for it, realizing it’s covered
with thick, soft fur. One of the prince’s ice hounds—I can’t tell which one
—lifts her head and looks at me before lying back down and closing her
eyes. Should I be worried she’s about to bite off my face? She seems to be
half asleep, though.
A moment later, a shadow falls over me, and Nadir stands there, looking
down with a white mug cradled in his hand. “How are you feeling,
Inmate?” There’s an amused gleam in his eyes and a smug smile on his face
that I want to slap right off. Except I’m not sure I can do so without puking
all over him. “You made quite the spectacle of yourself last night.”
I narrow my gaze and then wince, because holy shit, even that hurts right
now. Thinking of last night, I remember the way he held my hair back and
then carried me to bed. There isn’t a single drop of that tenderness left in his
demeanor. Did I imagine him doing all that? Maybe it was a drunken haze
and just another dream. But I ended up in this bed somehow.
“I want to die,” I say, rubbing my temple, trying to coax out a sliver of
relief. Nadir’s chuckle borders on evil as he takes a sip of his coffee.
Slowly, so slowly, I sit up, the entire room rolling. The second ice hound is
snuggled at my feet, and I wonder why the change of heart when I was sure
they both wanted to eat me.
But I’m in too much pain to really care.
Groaning, I slide my legs to the floor, putting my head between my knees
as I fight down another wave of dizziness.
“These should help,” Nadir says, picking up a bottle from the nightstand
and handing it to me. It’s filled with small white pills. “Take two and come
and have breakfast. We have a lot of ground to cover today.”
“What happened to ‘if I was in any state to do so?’” I ask, recalling some
of his words from last night.
“You do the crime, then you suffer the punishment.”
“Do you have that motto tattooed on your ass?” I ask, tipping two pills
into my hand and snapping the lid back on the bottle. We both know I’m
talking about Nostraza, but he doesn’t seem affected by my question. He
sinks into his seat and then tears into a strip of bacon.
“Thinking about my ass, Inmate?”
I gag on the bile that climbs up my throat and turn away, incensed at his
attitude and wildly disappointed I did imagine those gentle but vengeful
words he uttered last night. I swallow the pills, followed by the entire glass
of water standing on the nightstand, and sit with my eyes closed for several
minutes, focusing on the currently staggering effort of not throwing up.
The pills take effect quickly, dulling the throb in my head and settling the
roil in my stomach. When I feel somewhat normal again, I let out a sigh of
relief and ease myself up. The dogs finally rouse from their positions and
jump to the floor before they pad over to their bowls to eat their own
breakfasts.
After looking across the large bed, I frown.
“Where did you sleep last night?” I turn to Nadir, who is now watching
me from under a pair of thick, dark lashes.
“In my bed.”
“But I was in your bed.”
“I am aware of that,” he says with disdain. “It was hard to miss the smell
of your vomit all night.” He pauses with his fork poised in midair and
wrinkles his nose before adding, “And right now.”
I look down at myself, smoothing my rumpled tunic and wincing at the
crusty evidence of his words. “Sorry,” I say, realizing he let me sleep in his
bed like this. I should be thanking him.
“And don’t worry,” he adds next, “there was nothing I was remotely
interested in.” He waves a hand as if to suggest my complete and total lack
of desirability before he resumes eating.
“You remind me of Gabriel,” I mumble under my breath, finally standing
up and walking over to pick up a dry piece of toast to nibble on the corner.
“What was that?”
“Nothing. Just someone else who knew the right way to flatter me.”
Nadir smirks and sips his coffee, his eyes never leaving me. I sit in the
seat across from him, heaping sliced plums on my plate.
“We’ll search in the east wing today. It’s near my father’s apartments. If
he has it there, then maybe you’ll feel it if we’re close enough. I’d prefer
not to enter his study or bedroom unless we’re absolutely sure we need to,”
Nadir says next. “Though we’ll still want to keep you out of sight. It’s one
thing for me to be wandering in the east wing, but another to bring my pet
there.”
I ignore the pet comment, knowing he’s just trying to get under my skin.
I’m too tired and hungover to be a pain in his ass right now. Instead, I nod
in agreement and take another bite of my toast. My stomach gurgles angrily,
but I force it down, knowing I’ll be lightheaded if I don’t get something in.
“Coffee?” he asks, holding up the carafe. I nod and hold out my cup
before he fills it. After I add a generous amount of cream, I take a deep sip
and sigh as the caffeine perks up my sagging corners.
“I’m still worried I won’t be able to sense it,” I say, voicing the concern
that’s been on my mind since we hatched this tenuous plan.
Nadir regards me carefully. “It is a possibility, but we won’t know for
sure unless we try. Being unable to access it doesn’t negate its existence.
While I can’t be one hundred percent certain, I’m confident you’ll still be
able to feel it.”
I let out a frustrated huff.
“You’ve been trying to unlock it?”
“Yes,” I say. “I’m trying.” Even as I think about it, I go inside myself,
reaching for that place I can’t pull apart. It’s like teasing a loose thread
that’s too small to grasp with your fingers, constantly slipping from your
grip.
“May I?” Nadir asks.
“May you what?”
“Use my own magic to see if I can help. If you’re the Primary, it should
be strong enough for me to touch it.”
I don’t hesitate at the offer. I want to figure this out so badly I can taste it.
I want to be free of this cage. None of my goals or dreams are possible as
long as I’m trapped this way. “Yes. Please.”
Nadir sends out a tendril of translucent violet light. It circles around my
shoulders, and I watch it like it’s a snake poised for attack. Maybe I
shouldn’t have agreed to this after all, but if he really wanted to kill me, he
could have done so many times already. My eyes track the ribbon of light
wrapping around my torso, and my own magic responds, soothed by his
presence. It rolls in soft gentle waves, thrumming under my skin with
languid grace like frigid syrup.
“Neat trick,” I say as more ribbons of light surround me. “What else can
you do with this?”
His expression turns sly. “All kinds of interesting things, Inmate. Things
that would make your toes curl.”
There is a definite hint of suggestion in his words and when I realize
what he means, my lips part and then snap shut.
“You’re a pig.”
His laughter is low as his magic twirls around me tighter and sinks into
my skin like water absorbing into parched sand, followed by another
sensation, something closer and deeper to my heart. I gasp before it
strengthens and tightens against my organs.
“Can you lead me to where you feel the block?” Nadir asks, all business
now.
“How?”
“You can feel my magic in you?” I nod with a shiver. “Close your eyes
and imagine you’re holding on to it, like a piece of ribbon or string. Pull on
it.”
I do as he asks, and the softness of his light twists through me, entwining
with the power trapped under my skin. The two threads of magic slide
together and suddenly I’m seized with flutters of slippery wet heat, and my
mouth parts as my thighs clench together. I clear my throat, trying to
recover my focus as the sensation roots deep into my core, winding tighter
as I try to lead his magic to the trapdoor right in the center of my chest.
When I think I’ve directed him to the proper location, I open my eyes to
find him staring at me with such a sense of open rawness, my breath
hitches. This feels so wildly intimate. It’s like I’ve stripped naked and
draped myself over the table for his perusal. His magic twists inside my
chest and then I feel it trying to pry at that locked gate that refuses to budge.
He spends a few minutes doing all the same things I’ve tried over and
over, to no avail. His face is a mask of concentration as he focuses on the
task, and I take this moment of quiet to watch him, tracing the lines of his
nose and jaw and cheekbones. He’s really quite beautiful, in a cold and
savage sort of way. When he’s not snarling at me, anyway. One might not
call him handsome in the traditional sense, but there’s something far more
magnetic about him than could ever be captured with such banal
sentiments.
As if sensing my careful perusal, his eyes flick to mine and our gazes
hold as I feel his magic pull away from the center of my chest and then
slide through my limbs, spiraling through my arms and legs like our two
halves are dancing to a lilting tune only we can hear.
We’re both caught in a trance, our breaths the only sounds in the room.
But I’ve never felt more at peace than I do right now. I’ve never felt so
comfortable in my own body. There’s a disconcerting sense that I’ve found
something I’ve lost. Like I’ve come home.
I blink and look away, severing the connection, trying to dispel this
strange rush. This feels too much like a complication I can’t afford right
now. Clearing my throat, I push my chair back a few inches, as though that
will make the slightest bit of difference.
“See? Locked tighter than an underwater vault.” My voice is raw and
shaky, and I wish I understood why he’s affecting me this way.
Nadir says nothing for a moment, the colors in his eyes swirling faster
than normal. “I see,” he finally says and then he sits back, shredding the last
thread holding the tension in the room together. “We might be able to work
on it.”
I swallow and nod, thinking about doing that with him again. Whatever
that was. I might be in way over my head here.
After two more pieces of toast, a strip of bacon, and a mountain of plums,
I’m feeling much better. The pills are mostly working, leaving only a small
throb in my temple I can manage.
Nadir waits for me to shower and get dressed. I move quickly, though he
doesn’t seem impatient. I feel his gaze as I go about the room and, for some
reason, I can’t seem to make my limbs work properly. I keep dropping
things and fumbling everything I try to pick up. His presence is a constant
force pushing in on me. Thank Zerra I was completely passed out last night.
I shudder to think of the dreams I might have had with him lying right next
to me had I been coherent.
After finding a clean pair of leggings and a fitted black top with sleeves
that fall past my wrists with loops for my thumbs, I stuff my feet into a pair
of soft black boots. My hair is still damp from the shower, so I leave it
down, but I clip in some of the fake colorful hair pieces Amya provided.
They look just like the ones in her hair, though I think hers might be
natural. I wonder if the people of The Aurora buy these imitations to look
like their princess. I’m not sure why that thought makes me smile.
“Okay, I’m ready,” I declare, feeling much better than I did an hour ago.
Nadir is giving me an odd look with his mouth flattened into a line.
“What?” I ask, looking down at myself. Have I been found wanting yet
again?
His nostrils flare, and then he looks away. “Nothing. Let’s go.”
We exit the room and he leads me through the winding hallways. We
come to a halt just as we’re about to turn a corner. “There will be guards
stationed at the entrance. It would be better for them not to see you. I can
shield you for a short time. They won’t notice you as we pass through, but
you’ll need to stay close.”
“It won’t be like what we did…in there?” I gesture vaguely in the
direction we just came, both terrified and thrilled at the idea of his magic
touching mine again.
“No,” he replies, shaking his head. “This won’t be like…that.”
“Okay.”
“Put your arms around my waist. The more of you touching me, the
better.”
I raise an eyebrow at that, but don’t comment as I obey his request.
“Good girl,” he says and then gives me a surprised look, as though he
hadn’t meant to say that. The words feel foreign and yet familiar in a way I
can’t quite place. But I reason it’s a step up from “Inmate.”
After another moment, the swirl of his magic blooms around me in
ribbons of bright light. It’s so beautiful I’m caught up in the way it moves
like streamers waving in the breeze. They pull in, wrapping around me, and
then sink into the weave of my clothing.
Nothing else seems different as I look around, but Nadir ushers me
forward confidently now. I shuffle along, trying not to make any noise as I
cling to his waist, feeling rather foolish and trying not to let my hands
wander along the taut planes of his stomach and chest.
He nods to the two guards flanking both sides of a large archway.
They’re both low fae, with pale green skin, wearing the black soldier’s
uniform of The Aurora. One of them is bald with large pointed ears, and the
other has a thin line of black hair running down the center of his skull.
“Your Highness,” the hairless one says, his tone deferential. “What is
your business in the east wing?”
“I’m headed to the library,” Nadir says before handing a piece of paper
over to the guards. The guard frowns at it and scratches a spot on his cheek
before he hands it to the other one. I look up at Nadir, who’s pretending I’m
not there. Just the prince out for a visit to the library all on his own while I
hang invisibly off him. This is so awkward.
They exchange a few more words, and the guards reluctantly stand aside.
I don’t know why I’m surprised the king wouldn’t even let his own son
anywhere near his rooms, but I shouldn’t be. It seems he treats everyone
with the same level of disdain.
We breeze past the low fae and enter a wide, quiet hallway. Nadir directs
me into an alcove and then pulls his magic back, the same ribbons of color
spreading out and then dissipating in the air.
“Keep an eye out for more guards,” Nadir says. “I can only hold the
glamour for so long at a time and we might have to do that again if anyone
approaches. It takes a few seconds for it to fully render, so we may not get
enough notice. In that case, hide yourself as quickly as you can.”
Not waiting for me to reply, he grabs my hand and pulls me down an
empty hallway. I try not to acknowledge the warmth of his hand and the
sick little thrill I get when he squeezes it. That thing we did with our magic
earlier has thrown me off, making me react in unwelcome ways. I hate this
asshole.
Nadir leads me through several hallways and into numerous rooms that
all blur together. We stand in each of them, waiting for something to trigger,
but it’s an empty stretch of nothing. With every room we check off, I grow
more and more dejected.
What if the Crown isn’t even here? What if it’s hidden somewhere else in
Ouranos? We could be searching forever. Even worse, what if it doesn’t
exist anymore?
I clutch the locket around my neck and squeeze it, thinking of the tiny
shard of red stone nestled inside. This came from somewhere, though, and
that Crown has to exist.
Everything depends on it.
As we snake through hallways, we encounter the occasional guard or
maid or servant, but manage to avoid their attention. It seems Nadir has
plenty of practice making his way around the Keep without being noticed.
Would anyone be foolish enough to challenge the king within these walls,
anyway? Maybe not. But I will. I don’t care what happens to me. I will take
him apart bit by excruciating bit as soon as I get the chance.
We turn another corner, and Nadir quickly backs up, bumping into me
and stepping on my foot.
“Ow!”
“Shut up,” he hisses, pushing me back.
“What—”
A deep voice floats from around the corner and I seize up. I know that
voice like I know my own heartbeat. I hear it in my nightmares and the
swirling void of my very worst memories.
Nadir spins around and scans the space as the king and whoever he’s
speaking with move closer. Nadir drags me towards a narrow door and
shoves me inside. He slams it shut, engulfing us in complete darkness. The
space is so tight that my back is crushed to the wall and Nadir is pressed at
my front. I can barely move.
He covers my mouth with a hand, and I shake my head, but he doesn’t
relent, pressing harder. I go still as I hear the king’s voice again. He seems
to have stopped and is now conversing right outside, the door muffling his
words. All I know is the king is just a few feet away, and I have no idea
what he’d do if he caught us here.
Nadir drops his hand, satisfied that I appreciate the need to be quiet. We
both wait in tense silence as I try to control my breathing and my pounding
heart. A small light flares, illuminating the outlines of Nadir’s face thanks
to the dim aura that surrounds him.
He’s leaning on his forearms against the wall, caging me in. In another
reminder, he presses a finger to his lips, and I nod, my hair rustling against
the wall behind me.
The voices outside continue as I become increasingly conscious of the
prince’s body flattened against me. Heat prickles up the back of my neck
and my cheeks warm as he looks down, the strong lines of his face arranged
into a mask of intensity.
I’m not sure if I imagine the way he leans in even closer, but my skin is
buzzing in every place he’s touching. Even fully clothed, the sensation is so
heady it’s like we’re completely naked.
No, not quite that. I have a feeling that would feel very different.
My dream from two nights earlier surfaces, and the space between my
thighs gives a noticeable throb. What would it be like to be taken by this
wild and fearsome prince? Atlas had been enthusiastic, but gentle.
Something tells me there’s no place in his life where Nadir feels the need to
be gentle about anything.
My breath becomes tighter. The space feels smaller and smaller as the
thrum pounding low in my stomach takes up all the room in the closet.
Eventually, the voices outside start to dissipate, dropping away as the sound
of their footsteps retreat into the distance. When it seems like they’re gone,
neither one of us moves.
Nadir’s face is so close to mine I can feel the softness of his breath
against my lips. I want to inhale his crisp arctic smell and lose myself in it.
His face moves closer, and my entire world shrinks down to this moment
and the prince. The feel of his strong body against mine and the way his
arms are caging me in. His mouth looks good enough to eat, and I want him
to devour me whole.
“Lor,” he whispers. His voice is soft, but there’s something as jagged as
torn iron buried in that single syllable. He said my name. My actual name
and I’ve never loved the sound of it more than I do at this moment. That
simple, nothing name that was given to me to keep me as anonymous and
unremarkable as possible. Somehow, he makes it sound like it’s a name
forged in fire and created for a queen.
“Nadir,” I whisper back, wanting to feel his name on my tongue, too. To
feel those clipped parts I’ve wondered about ever since I heard it. Why did
his parents choose to mark him with a word that means rock bottom?
He’s holding so still, it’s like he’s made of glass, and I’m so hot I want to
explode into a million shards. Then he drops his head and runs his nose
along the curve of my throat, taking a long, luxurious inhale as my head tips
to the side. I grip the wall behind me, worried I’m about to collapse under
the weight of my desire.
Slowly, he drags it up until he comes to the sensitive spot right behind
my ear and lets out a ragged breath that envelops me from every side. I
don’t move, not entirely sure where I want this to go. Rationally, I regard
him as one step down from his father. He’s the son of my enemy. But
physically, I can’t stop reacting to him in a way that leaves me nearly
shattered and breathless with wanting.
I feel the nip of his teeth against my skin and then the crawl of his warm
mouth as he makes his way back down the column of my throat. My hips
move of their own accord, arching into his and he responds, grinding his
body against me. The rock-hard evidence of how this is affecting him sends
a whole new wave of ripples down my spine.
He pulls his head up and meets my eyes, those swirling colors visible in
the closet's dimness. There is so much written in the way they move I can’t
believe I’ve never realized how tied to his emotions those lights are. There’s
conflict in them. And a desire so visceral, my core melts into liquid heat.
But then a second later, they go dim, turning into a midnight sky, his fists
clenching against the wall before he looks away with such force it’s like
he’s breaking out of concrete.
“Let’s go,” he says, his voice rough. “We need to get out of here before
my father finds us.”
“What?” I ask, bewildered at his sudden shift in mood.
He pulls away and wraps me in his glamour. This time he doesn’t invite
me to touch him, and I wonder if I’ve done something wrong. Then he
opens the door before slipping out and gesturing for me to come along.
I do as he says, following in his hurried footsteps, confused about what’s
just happened.
Chapter Twenty-two

“S o, what exactly did my grandmother do? How did she cut off
everyone’s magic?” I ask, flipping through the book in my lap.
I’ve spent the last two days combing through Nadir’s library, delving
further into the history of my grandmother, trying to seal up the gaps in my
education.
Was it because my parents didn’t know the truth or because they were
keeping things from me? I hope it was because of ignorance and not
because they wanted to hide it. I’d have a hard time understanding how they
could leave me to face everything without giving me this knowledge I need
so desperately. They had to know I might end up on my own someday.
Nadir looks up from the book he’s reading, seated on the sofa across
from me. We’re in his room, the incident in the closet sitting between us
like a boulder. Neither of us has acknowledged it with words, but it’s been
hanging there in every look and accidental touch since then. At night, when
we lie on opposite sides of that big bed, you could practically scoop the
tension up with a shovel. I’m just grateful I haven’t had more dirty dreams
because then I wouldn’t be able to look at him ever again.
As we dance around the elephant in the room, we’ve spent two more
days combing the Keep, but we’ve only come upon silent dead ends.
“No one really knows,” Nadir replies, closing his book and leaning back
before he crosses an ankle over his knee. His dark hair is loose and
inexplicably wind-tossed, even though I’m sure he hasn’t left the Keep all
day. “When your grandparents tried to take over Ouranos, rumor suggests
they were working with one of Zerra’s High Priestesses, but they all died
before anyone could figure out how or why. There’s no one left alive who
was there at the end. The main clue that suggests they were working with
powerful magic was the Woodlands Staff was found amongst the wreckage,
miraculously unharmed.”
“Just the Staff?” I ask. “Not the Crown?”
“Just the Staff.”
I flip the page and then back again.
“How exactly does High Fae magic work? What does Imperial magic
mean?”
Nadir sits forward, bracing his elbows on his knees. “There are two types
of High Fae power,” he says. “There’s the regular line of magic that can
belong to any Fae. Some have it and some don’t, and some have it both in
varying degrees of strength and affinity.”
“I’m not sure I understand.”
“It’s like a human who is a gifted painter. They may have training from a
teacher, but ultimately, some will be better at it than others, no matter what.
And that same Fae might have a terrible singing voice. It’s the same with
magic.”
“There was a hair stylist I met who said he was adept at beauty magic.”
“There’s an example,” Nadir replies. “That was his affinity and likely a
skill he’s cultivated.”
“And Imperial magic?”
“That is the magic sourced from every realm. It is the lifeblood and the
thread that holds the land and its people together. When the magic
disappeared, we all felt it. The earth began to crumble, lakes and rivers
drying up, sickness plaguing the animals, humans, and Fae. Some areas of
Ouranos still haven’t recovered. Imperial magic is strongest in anyone who
belongs the royal family, particularly those of the direct line.”
“Like you and Amya.”
“Yes. Or you and your siblings.”
“But they don’t have much.”
He nods. “I’ve considered that. I’ve been wondering if it’s a side effect of
the same affliction that cursed everyone’s magic.”
“So you think they could have more?”
“Perhaps.”
I reflect on those words, wondering how Tristan and Willow would feel
about that. They’ve never suggested they resent their lack of power, but I
can’t help but think about how they could better protect themselves if they
were stronger.
“Did the Mirror reveal anything to you at all about your magic?” Nadir
asks, and I shake my head, being truthful this time.
“It told me this was forbidden.” I’m not sure why I decide to reveal this
now, but the words have been weighing heavy on my conscience. Were they
related to my grandmother, too?
Nadir arches an eyebrow. “What was?”
“I don’t know. It said this could never happen again, and I could only
assume it meant the bonding between me and Atlas. Do you know why?”
Nadir shakes his head before a thoughtful expression crosses his face.
“It’s odd.”
“What is?”
“I’ve never heard of anyone who isn’t ascended speaking with the
Artefacts like that.”
It’s my turn to arch my brow. “You haven’t?”
He shakes his head. I open my mouth to protest, but he silences me with
the wave of his hand. “I’m not saying I don’t believe you. Just that it’s
peculiar.”
I slump back against the sofa. “I can’t believe my grandmother allied
with your father,” I mutter, flipping another page angrily. Nadir’s dark
chuckle has me looking his way.
“It seems history is repeating itself. Does that bother you, Inmate?”
“Yes,” I snap, turning back to the book.
“Well, don’t worry. It was his word against a dead queen. I’m sure there’s
more to the story than he ever let on. Anything he said was undoubtedly
manipulated to make him look like the hero.”
Silence fills the room with a weighted tension, and I look back at Nadir,
who’s studying me carefully. “What?”
He leans forward, uncrossing his legs and bracing his elbows on his
knees. “What did he do to you? I know he’s responsible for your parents’
deaths—“
“He murdered them,” I interrupt. “In cold blood.”
Nadir drops his head and then looks up. “Yes, he murdered them. But that
doesn’t entirely explain the haunted look in your eyes every time I mention
him. What else happened?” He cants his head, and it feels like he’s looking
straight into my soul where the rotting carcass of my secrets lie.
“Nothing,” I say.
“I don’t believe you.”
I glare at him, pressing my lips together. “Too bad.”
“Are we going to talk about what happened in the closet?” I ask and
wince. I wanted to change the subject, but this topic is mired in just as many
pitfalls as the previous one.
Nadir’s jaw clenches and his shoulders tighten. “Happened?”
My gaze flicks upward in irritation.
“Don’t fucking pretend you don’t know what I’m talking about.” Pushing
myself up from the sofa, I slap the book on the cushion and storm to the
window. There’s nowhere for me to go in this place, and I’m going crazy,
always trapped here in this room with him.
A moment later, I sense his presence behind me. His hands plant
themselves on the glass on either side of my head. He’s leaning so close that
I go completely still.
“What are you doing?”
“Let’s talk about what happened, Inmate.”
“Don’t call me that,” I hiss, looking over my shoulder at his smirk. I want
to punch that face, but I also really want something else. I think. I shake my
head. Fuck.
“Let’s talk about how you pressed yourself against me. I could smell how
wet you were in that closet.”
I fold my arms tighter, letting out an indignant sound and refusing to look
at him. “I did no such thing. You pressed yourself against me.” We’ve both
moved closer, only the barest whisper of space between us. “Just like you’re
doing right now.”
He pushes in closer, and I don’t resist. I don’t move away. Instead, I lean
into him, enjoying the way he feels against me far too much. “So you don’t
deny how wet you were?”
“I felt you, too,” I say. “I wasn’t the only one affected in there.”
“You weren’t.” His voice drops to a rasp and his lips brush against my
ear. “I feel it every time you’re in the room. You make me so fucking hard I
can’t think straight. I’ve jerked off in the shower every day, thinking about
you. Thinking about how much you hate me.”
My breath lodges in my chest like wet sand.
Oh Zerra, what is going on here?
I should walk away right now. I should nail this asshole in the balls.
”I do hate you,“ I say, more breathlessly than I intend.
He drops a hand from the window and picks up a thick lock of my hair,
pressing it to his nose and inhaling with a groan. I should be appalled by
that—I’m not some beast to be sniffed. But I’m not. Zerra, why is that
making my cheeks burn?
“I hate everything about you and your wretched family and this horrible
place. Once I leave here, it’ll be too soon if I ever see The Aurora again.”
“I know that. And you hate how much you want me.“ He presses in
closer so his body is now flush with mine and every curve and arc of his
hard frame is shredding my paper-thin resolve.
“You’re delusional,” I say, hoping my lie isn’t as transparent as it feels. “I
want nothing to do with you. I’m only here to get my Crown.”
His chuckle is low and dark. He drops my hair and then his hand slides
across my stomach before he yanks me towards him, my ass meeting the
hard length of his cock. I almost allow a groan to slip from my mouth as he
rotates our hips together in a listless circle.
“I know that, too, Inmate. That doesn’t stop me from wanting to strip off
these clothes and fuck you so hard the bed collapses.”
“I… You… This is highly inappropriate.” I will myself to pull from his
grasp, but I can’t seem to make myself move.
“Spend one night with me. I’ll break you into pieces. I’ll fuck your
mouth and your pussy with my tongue and my cock and my fingers and
make you come so many times you lose count. I’ll make you beg for it
again and again.”
My legs press together, and I attempt to swallow the thick knot caught in
my throat. My nerves are firing with heat and the longing to let him do
every single one of those things.
“I had a dream about you,” I say, wondering why the fuck I’m telling him
this. He goes still.
“What happened?”
I hesitate before his grip against my stomach tightens.
“Tell me.”
“It was in the manor house. You came into my room and laid on top of
me and…”
He lets out a whoosh of air, snipped into ragged pieces. “I had the same
dream.”
Something foreign but distantly familiar flutters in my chest.
“It felt…so real,” I say softly, staring at the expanse of sky outside where
night is descending, the barest whisper of the northern lights appearing.
“It did,” he agrees, his slow movements starting up again. He slides a
hand under my sweater, his palm resting on my stomach, scorching a line of
heat that radiates out through my limbs. “It felt so real.”
Somehow, he manages to move even closer. Like he wants to pull me
right inside.
“Say yes,” he says. “One night. One long, endless night where I promise
you more pleasure than you ever thought possible.”
My mouth opens and then closes. A pathetic part of me wants to say yes,
but I nearly fell for one royal Fae who was only after one thing.
“How can I trust you?” I hate how small and uncertain I sound. Atlas
didn’t break my heart—I know now that I didn’t love him—but he broke
something. For one fleeting moment, I’d believed someone had wanted me
for me, but I’d been so blind and foolish. I should have learned the only
people in this world I can trust are Willow and Tristan.
“This isn’t about anything but fucking,” he says, and I should be appalled
by that, too, but something about his bold honesty kindles a fire low in my
stomach. “This isn’t about anything more than skin and heat and my cock
driving into you until your mind turns to jelly.”
I spin around and back up. The cold window presses against my back and
Nadir shifts another inch, his heat boiling my skin.
“I.…don’t think that would be a good idea.”
There is not one believable shred in the tone of my voice, and he smiles.
It’s not a warm smile. It’s slow and seductive and hooks between my legs
with a stubbornness I’m trying to resist. No, it’s definitely not warm,
because it practically lights me on fire.
“Think about it,” he says. “Don’t say no, yet.”
I shake my head, but it feels like I’m moving through cold tree sap. It’s
so hard to find the momentum to refuse him outright. “I can’t.”
“Why not?”
“I don’t know.”
The corner of his mouth ticks up. “Promise me you’ll consider it.”
I find myself nodding before I know what I’m doing. I’m already
considering it, but this would be a terrible mistake. He leans in closer and I
push back against the unyielding glass. He’s not touching me, but all it
would take is a deep breath to bridge the distance.
His head drops next to my ear with a gentle brush of lips. “Understand
I’ll be ready at any moment you’re ready to say yes.”
Finally, I force my sluggish limbs to respond, my knees bending to slip
under his arm that’s caging me against the glass.
“That isn’t going to happen,” I say, trying to sound confident, but it
comes out shaky and not even I believe it.
Nadir turns, folding his arms over his chest and tipping his head. “We’ll
see about that, Inmate.”
“Yah,” is the most articulate response I can summon as I spin around and
bolt for the bathroom. It has a lock on the door, and it’s the only place I can
run.
Chapter Twenty-three

Nadir

I crouch down in front of the female, who stares out the window, her dark
eyes blank and devoid of emotion or consciousness.
“Mother,” I say softly, laying my hand on hers. Her skin is cold and dry.
Thin, like old parchment that would rip with the slightest bit of pressure. I
can’t remember the last time she’s been outside, and I’m long past hoping
she’ll ever do so again.
“How are you?”
I don’t know why I always ask. I never get an answer. Sometimes she’ll
blink in response. If she’s having a good day, I might note the pressing of
her lips and the briefest flicker of awareness in her expression. But never
anything more. Still, I try, hoping that if I keep asking, she knows I’m here
for her and that I forgive her for everything.
Amya perches on the bed, one arm wrapped around the bedpost with her
temple tipped against it. Her eyes are dark and flat as she watches me.
“Do you want to talk to her?” I ask my sister.
She shakes her head, leaning away. “Not today.”
“You never want to.”
Amya stands up and walks around to the other side of the bed. “Because I
don’t know what to say.”
“Tell her about yourself.”
“She’s not listening, Nadir.”
“You don’t know that.”
Amya scrunches her eyes together and rubs her face with both her hands.
“I don’t want to fight about this, okay? I come to see her when I can, but I
never knew her, Nadir.”
I stand up and kiss my mother on her brow before I smooth down her
black hair. She’s beautiful—Amya looks so much like her—but she’s a shell
of the mother I once knew.
“I’ll be back tomorrow,” I promise, just like I do every day, and I try to
keep it as often as I can.
Then I whirl on Amya.
“She’s still your mother,” I growl, pushing her out of the room and
closing the door softly behind me.
“I know! You think I don’t know? I want to love her, but I never got the
chance. How am I supposed to feel anything when this is the only way I’ve
ever known her?”
Tears fill her eyes, and my anger softens. She’s right. It isn’t her fault.
Amya never experienced her light and kindness, so why should she feel the
same way I do?
“I’m sorry,” I reply. “I just get so—“
“I know,” she says softly, taking my hand. “I know.”
We leave my mother’s wing and head through the Keep, making our way
towards Amya’s rooms.
“Have you received any news from Aphelion?” I ask as we enter her
bedroom. It resembles mine in shape and size, but it’s far more colorful.
Crimson, violet, teal, and fuchsia are splashed through the sheets, furniture,
rugs, and pillows.
“Atlas is looking for her,” she says as she heads for her dressing table
while I pace the length of the room, running a hand through my hair. “He’s
been sending out secret search parties to every realm.”
“Does he suspect us?”
She shakes her head, looking at me through the mirror as she runs a brush
through her hair. “I’m not sure. Either he knows and is assuming we
wouldn’t hide her in the most obvious spot, or he’s hedging his bets and
investigating every ruler. If he found out her secret, it’s entirely possible
others know, too.”
“That’s information we need,” I say, and she nods.
“I know. My people are doing what they can.”
“Good.” I turn and pace in the other direction, considering everything
Amya just said, wondering how Atlas knew who Lor was and what he
specifically planned to do with her. I’ve known Atlas a long time, and I’ve
never gotten the sense he’s capable of such ruthlessness, but maybe I’ve
read him all wrong.
Amya continues, still facing the mirror as she lines her eyes with a black
pencil. “Rumors are saying he’s refusing to set a date for the bonding
ceremony with the winner of the Trials.”
I say nothing to that, thoughts running through my head.
“What else is bothering you?” she asks, coating her lips with a thick
smear of deep purple lipstick.
“Nothing,” I say too quickly. What is the matter, exactly? There are so
many things crowding for my attention, I can’t decide which is the most
aggravating.
Lor. That’s what’s most aggravating. The way I can’t get her out of my
head and the way she keeps looking at me, like I’m going to bite out a piece
of her. I want to. Zerra, how I want to sink my teeth into her warm flesh. I
shouldn’t have said those things in my room. I should have kept on
pretending she had no effect on me, but that’s never been my style. But now
she’s acting like a frightened rabbit, and I worry I’ve pushed her away.
Clicking the cap back onto the golden tube, Amya places it on her vanity
and spins around. “Sure. Sounds believable.”
I glare at her and pace to the other end of the room.
“Any luck with the Crown yet?”
“No,” I say, dropping into a plush violet armchair arranged around a low
coffee table near the foot of her bed. “We searched the vaults, and most of
the east and west wings, but she says she feels nothing. I’m worried that
whatever is blocking her ability to touch her magic is preventing her from
sensing it.”
“Or it’s just not here.”
Amya sits across from me. She’s wearing a short dress made of frothy
layers of tulle, her legs bare and her feet adorned with a pair of black heels
that lace up her calves.
“Or it’s just not here,” I agree, not willing to accept that fact. “And if
that’s the case, then it could be literally anywhere in Ouranos.”
Amya nods, picking up the bottle of wine on the table next to her and
pouring herself a glass of the blood red liquid. She takes a sip and then
presses her lips together.
“But you have some idea.”
“Am I that obvious?”
“Only to me, big brother.”
I smirk and lean back in my chair. “If it’s not here, then wouldn’t it make
sense that it’s closest to where it was last seen?”
Amya blinks at that. “You’d take her into Heart?”
“If I have to.”
“That area has already been searched thoroughly. Many times. For
years.”
“But none of them had the Primary,” I counter, and her shoulders slump.
“Nadir…what are you planning? If you find it there, you might not be
able to control her.”
I scoff. “I’m not worried about that.”
“Why not?”
“She may be strong, but she has no idea how to use her magic, and she
isn’t bonded yet. Besides, I’m sure I’m stronger.”
Amya tips her head. “How can you be so positive of that?”
I arch an eyebrow at her, and she rolls her eyes. “Oh, to have the
confidence of a male born to privilege.”
I shake my head, leaning forward and clasping my hands between my
knees. “I don’t think she needs controlling. She wants to end Father as
badly as we do. Sometimes I think her loathing of him runs even deeper
than mine.”
Amya snorts. “That doesn’t seem possible.”
“She gets that haunted look any time he’s mentioned. When she saw him
at the event the other night, she was shaking so hard her teeth were
chattering.”
Amya frowns, her glass pausing in mid-air. “He did something to her.”
My jaw clenches. I know Lor’s keeping something from me about my
father. “It’s the only explanation.”
“But she was a child.” Our eyes meet and Amya’s breath hitches. “He
wouldn’t hurt a child.”
She says it in a way that makes it sound like a wish she knows will never
be granted. Amya wants to believe he’s more than he seems. She still clings
to a feeble shred of hope that there’s goodness somewhere in him.
“He threw her in prison. All three of them.”
She nods, releasing a tense breath.
“Does it make you reconsider everything?” Amya asks, tipping her head.
“What do you mean?”
“About this place we call home? Three innocent children were tossed
inside Nostraza for over a decade and we had no idea.”
“How were we to know?”
“We had no idea,” she follows up, “because we never bothered to care.
We didn’t know because we assumed we understood the kinds of people
that are in there. What if there are others who don’t belong there?”
My stomach drops, remembering the same words Lor hurled at me.
“Don’t be soft, Amya. What are we going to do? Let them all go?”
“What about what she told us, Nadir? About what happened to her?”
The blood in my veins simmers, thinking about the warden. Zerra, how I
wish I could have torn out his heart and shown it to him. As for my father,
it’s everything I can do not to march through these halls and tear him limb
from limb, damn everything that happens to me as result. He might not have
held the knife that carved those scars all over her body, but he’s responsible
for them all the same.
Of course it’s made me think differently about everything. My only
concern has ever been about keeping the peace in The Aurora, and that’s
where my involvement with Nostraza ended. I never gave another thought
to who found themselves behind those bars.
There comes a knock at the door, and we both look over as Mael enters.
“How are Willow and Tristan?” Amya asks as Mael drops into another
vacant chair. I give my sister a curious look, wondering why she’s so
concerned.
“They’re fine. Hylene will keep an eye on them for the next few days.”
Amya sits back and nods, apparently satisfied with that answer.
“Have you heard anything more from Etienne?” I ask Mael as he pours
himself a glass of wine.
“Just more of the same. Your father’s men have gone through most of the
settlements and rounded up all the women. Etienne’s working with the
resistance to hide as many as they can, but the ones your father’s soldiers
find are taken into a large tent, where they’re doing tests on them.”
“What kinds of tests?” Amya asks, leaning forward.
“He thinks they’re testing them for magic. There’s a lot of screaming.”
Both my sister and I frown.
“He’s searching for the Primary,” I say. “It’s the only thing that makes
sense.”
“Of Heart?” Mael asks.
“Where else?”
“But we have the Primary?” Amya asks. “Don’t we?”
I nod my head. “Yes.”
Mael leans back and gives me a skeptical look. “Are you sure? Maybe
your sweet little prisoner is lying to all of us.”
“She’s not.”
“I’m really going to need you to start thinking with your head, not your
cock,” Mael drawls.
“Fuck off,” I reply, my voice dropping. “I am thinking with my head.”
Zerra, I hope I am. Lor has my thoughts so tangled up, I’m not sure what
I’m doing half the time anymore.
Mael snorts and takes a sip of his wine. “Sure you are.”
After another pause, he continues. “I’ve been doing some digging, and
the vote is currently sitting at five to three in favor.”
Amya sits up. “What vote?”
I give her a grim look. “I haven’t had the chance to fill you in yet, but the
other night, Father said he was tabling a bill to amend the mining labor
laws.”
Amya narrows her eyes. “The low fae.”
I nod. “He wants to do away with the clause that prevents their
conscription before they reach the age of maturity.”
“So he’d have children working there,” Mael adds, as though we don’t
understand the implications of such a change.
Something dark flashes in Amya’s expression. I know it’s the death of
that last bit of hope. Our father is a tyrant, and it’s the only way he knows.
His continued oppression of the low fae has been a point of contention
during his rule. There are some who don’t agree with his methods, but the
prejudices against the low fae run deep, and most are content to let the pot
sit unstirred. I’ve tried to convince my father slavery isn’t necessary, but
unsurprisingly, he isn’t moved by my words.
The accords put in place when the low fae were indentured decreed that
any decision made regarding their servitude had to be voted on
unanimously by the council. The king’s power is absolute, but not quite. A
fact for which I’m forever grateful.
“He wants me to help convince everyone to vote in his favor,“ I say,
shaking my head. When he ordered me to do his bidding at the Frostfire
party on opening night, it took all of my willpower not to smash in his head.
Maybe it was part of the reason I’d gotten so angry when I’d seen Tharos
with Lor. But maybe not. When I saw him touching her, I officially lost my
shit.
My father knows I don’t support the enslavement of the low fae, but he
delights in forcing me to do things against my will. It’s always been that
way, and he’ll do whatever’s necessary to bend me to his wishes.
I can’t fucking wait to wipe that smug grin off his face.
“Anyway, I am doing everything I can to ensure they don’t vote in
favor,” I say.
“He’s going to know,” Amya says, quietly.
“I’ll deal with the consequences later. The bigger goal is to get rid of
him. Then I’ll have the power to stop all of it.”
Mael gives me a sidelong glance. They’re both worried about me, and I
know I’m getting reckless, but I’m also getting desperate. We’re at a tipping
point, though I’m not sure what the implications are yet. All I know is
something is shifting, and I need to seize this chance while I can.
We share a grim look when yet another knock sounds at the door.
“Enter,” Amya calls before a servant appears.
“Your Highnesses,” he says, bowing to us all before addressing me. “You
asked that the lady be brought to you when she was ready for the party.”
Lor appears through the door, and my heart nearly stops. She’s
breathtaking in a black gown with a deep neckline and adorned with violet
lace. The slinky skirt slits high up her hip and shows off the curves of her
leg. Her light brown skin gleams like it’s been dusted with silver. Our eyes
meet and everything, everything stirs within me. My worries about the
kingdom are pushed away as she stands there watching us with that open
gaze that makes my chest hurt.
When I propositioned her a few days ago, it had taken every ounce of my
strength not to press her to that window and kiss her until she forgot her
own name. I want her like I want air and the magic that flows in my veins.
Why is her draw so powerful?
An awkward silence hangs in the room as Lor’s eyes shift between us,
finding me and holding my stare. I’m completely caught up, and I’m not
sure what to do about that. I’ve never felt this way about anyone, much less
for someone I barely know.
A squeal blasts through my thoughts as my sister leaps up and runs over
to Lor.
“I knew this would be perfect on you,” she says, taking Lor’s hand and
admiring her. “Isn’t she perfect?” She looks at me, her face shining and a
knowing glint in her eye.
“Yes,” I say, my voice rough. “Perfect.”
Absolutely fucking perfect.
Lor is watching me and, for the first time in days, she doesn’t look like
she wants to turn around and hide. Instead, there’s a curiosity that lights up
her eyes. Something that speaks of anticipation rather than dread.
It’s hard not to hope she’s considered my words and changed her mind.
Maybe I was too blunt and honest. I know what happened to her in
Nostraza, and maybe she’s never been with a man who didn’t force her.
Fuck. And I came on to her like an animal. Guilt twists in my chest. No
wonder she can’t look at me.
I stand up and approach as her head tips up before her delicious lips part
and her tongue nips out to lick them. How I wish with every shred of my
soul I could take it between my teeth and…
And it’s then I notice how silent the room has gone. Amya, Mael, and
even the servant that delivered Lor here, are all staring at the two of us—
Amya with a bright knowing look in her eyes and Mael with a smirk.
I shake it off, pretending nothing is amiss.
“We should get going,” I say, holding out my elbow. Lor looks at it and
hesitates before I dip my head. “We must continue to keep up appearances.”
“Right, of course.” She loops her arm through mine and looks up at me
with such a raw mix of innocence and cunning it makes my dick stir.
I vow then to show her how sex can be with someone who doesn’t force
her into it. I may be a lot of things, but I am not that kind of male. I will
wait until she asks. Until she’s clear that she wants it. Then I’ll show her
how it can be with someone who worships every inch of her body from
their knees.
I just hope I don’t lose my mind before then.
Chapter Twenty-four

Lor

T onight’s party is in an area of the castle I recognize from our


searching, but it’s been transformed, decorated with candles and
luxurious draped fabrics for Frostfire. I walk in with Nadir, Amya, and
Mael, taking in the lushness of my surroundings. The Keep isn’t anything
like I expected. It’s far more beautiful than when I looked upon it during
those miserable nights in the Hollow.
“How are my brother and sister?” I ask Amya with my arm looped
through Nadir’s.
My limbs are still shaky from earlier. I hadn’t been able to catch my
breath when I’d walked into her room. Nadir had been so striking in his
perfect black suit, cut to fit the lines of his body like the fabric had created
an entire religion just to revere him.
“They’re fine. I promise,” Amya says. “They miss you, though.”
I nod, pressing my lips together, hating that we’d only been reunited a
few days before I had to leave them again.
“They insisted on helping, so I’ve got them doing a little research,
looking for any obscure references that might help us find the Crown.”
“Oh, that’s a good idea,” I reply, reminding myself that this is why I had
to abandon them for now.
After that little speech in Nadir’s room a few days ago, I’ve started to
wonder if he’s intentionally distracting me from my purpose. Is there some
larger plan I’m not seeing? Did he mean what he said, or is he trying to
throw me off? And what do I want the answer to be?
But he’s also been helping me during every free hour of the day and
seems wholly intent on finding the Crown. But is this all a ruse? I don’t
trust anyone. I can’t trust them.
His words have cycled through my head on a loop, and it’s practically all
I’ve been able to think about. I need to stay focused.
“Thank you for watching over them,” I say, returning to the present and
Amya smiles.
“It’s my pleasure.”
I nod and turn away, discomfited by the princess. She seems so desperate
to be my friend, but I blame her as much as I do Nadir and the king for what
happened to the three of us. She isn’t absolved from allowing Nostraza to
exist in the state it does.
We sweep our way into a wide hallway decorated with hundreds and
hundreds of candles interspersed at random heights along the walls.
Musicians play string instruments as guests in their finery amble down the
center towards an enormous arch that opens to the outside.
We pass under it, but when we cross the threshold, I realize we’re
actually under a massive clear dome. It’s filled with sleek jewel-toned sofas,
the floors covered in thick rugs. Waiters snake through the space with trays
in their hands bearing small bites and cocktails.
Looking up, I understand why the dome is clear. The northern lights are
out and they’re even more breathtaking than usual. I’m transfixed by the
slow ribbons that drift across the sky.
“They’re at their best during Frostfire,” Nadir says, his voice low in my
ear.
I let out a puff of air through my nose. “When I was locked away, the rare
nights I saw them, it was like a tiny, wasted part of me came back to life. It
always felt like a reminder there was the possibility of an existence beyond
those walls if only I could hold on for one more day.”
My mouth snaps shut. I didn’t mean to say all that. Nadir’s watching me
with something inscrutable in his expression. It seems to straddle a line
between conflicted and apologetic right before he blinks it away.
“I’ve felt the same sometimes,” he replies. “About how they restore a
piece of you, of course. Not…the other part.”
I scan our surroundings, noting the fine clothing and jewels, the chatter
and laughter. I’d always been so sure nothing worth living for could exist
inside the Keep during all those nights I dreamed of the day I’d storm its
walls. But this is beautiful. It’s full of life and laughter, and I can’t decide if
that makes me feel hopeful or even more resentful about everything.
I don’t want to feel sorry for myself. The circumstances of my heritage
always meant my destiny would never be normal or safe. I understand that.
But it’s hard not to wish things had turned out differently for my
grandmother, so that me and my siblings could have had the life meant for
us. Instead, we’re going to have to fight for it and take it back.
But maybe that’s better. Maybe it will mean more when we do.
“Shall we?” Nadir asks, taking my hand and leading me to an
arrangement of sofas in the center of the room. My breath hitches when I
see the Aurora King, one leg crossed over the other, an arm stretched along
the back and a drink in his other. He’s speaking with a stunning High Fae.
Her long red hair is twisted in a thick braid that falls over her shoulder, and
she presses her ample cleavage against him.
I stop and then Nadir does, too, and we both stare. Catching his
expression from the corner of my eye, I understand that we’re looking upon
this scene through entirely different contexts. His hand tightens around
mine, and I realize I have no idea if there’s an Aurora Queen. I’ve never
heard one mentioned, and I think I understand what might be bothering
Nadir as the king shamelessly flirts with the Fae at his side.
But the edge of Nadir’s anger steadies me. It’s like he needs me, and I
can’t be the one who falls apart right now. With a slight headshake, I
wonder where that thought came from. Why does it matter if he needs me?
And why would I think he’s my responsibility in any way?
Amya has swept past us and is kissing cheeks with partygoers, lounging
in what is clearly a place of honor.
Finally, Nadir comes back to himself and tugs me along. As we enter the
circle, the king’s eyes fall on his son, skating over me as though I’m no
more important than the tall flowerpots forming the perimeter. I stare at the
king, waiting for some flicker of recognition, but he looks right through me
like I’m nothing.
I’m pulled towards a seat where I settle between Amya and Nadir. Mael
doesn’t sit, instead stalking the boundary of our nook, surveying the guests.
“Is that really necessary in here?” I ask, pointing to the captain.
“Do you take my safety so lightly?” Nadir asks, his tone almost teasing.
It’s a side of him I’ve yet to see, and it almost makes me smile. “Mael takes
his job very seriously.”
“Except when he doesn’t,” Amya adds as she accepts a pale blue
cocktail. Mael, clearly overhearing us, looks at me and winks. Their ease
with one another reminds me so much of me and Willow and Tristan that I
sigh, wishing they were here.
Nadir slides his arm along the back of the sofa before his finger starts
tracing gentle circles on my shoulder. Sliding into my role, I sink into his
side, trying not to notice how nice he feels or the scent of his skin. The
words he uttered are ever at the front of my mind, coated in a forbidden
darkness that’s calling to let it take me over.
Amya is speaking with someone on her left, and it feels like Nadir and I
have been absorbed into a bubble where only the two of us exist. His other
hand lands on my bared knee and I meet his gaze, wondering if this is the
show we’re putting on or if the real show was the one in his room when he
said he wanted me?
“I’m sorry if I frightened you. The other day,” he says.
“You didn’t,” I say, meaning it. Frightened isn’t what I felt, though I
couldn’t name the specific emotion if I tried. “I was just surprised.”
He leans in closer, like a lover whispering sweet nothings in my ear. But
he isn’t my lover and there was nothing sweet about what he said.
“You look breathtaking, I—” He breaks off and seems to be collecting
himself.
“Why do you want me?” I ask softly, not wanting anyone to overhear our
conversation. “Is this about what I can do? Atlas said some very similar
things, but all he was doing was using me.”
“It’s not. It has nothing to do with that,” he says, and there’s something
open in his expression. Like he’s a page in a book where I can read every
word, but I only know some of the language.
“I still don’t understand.”
The hand on my knee tightens.
“Dance with me,” he says, standing up and pulling me with him.
I follow along with the wide breadth of his shoulders leading me through
the crowd until we find the dance floor, where the lights are dimmed low as
couples sway together.
“I’ve never been one to keep my attraction to a woman a secret,” he says,
his mouth close to my ear. “I understand he broke your trust, but I’m not
promising you anything. This is just sex, Inmate.”
I admit, hearing him say that makes this feel safer. Like it really is what
he says. I think of my old friend in Nostraza, Aero. How our relationship
had been much the same. We’d been drawn together by our circumstances
and the need for one another. And not much more.
Living inside the prison, I had no reason to ever hope or dream of
something more. That, too, was just sex, and I enjoyed it. More than
enjoyed it. Even if I don’t understand why, I can’t deny the pull I feel for
Nadir.
I should hate him. I do hate him. For so many things. But I also want him
to keep touching me.
“I know your past is…complicated when it comes to matters like this,”
he says, almost in hesitation, and I raise an eyebrow. I could dig in the knife
and tell him it’s his fault, or at least the fault of the king sitting a few feet
away, but I don’t. For once, I hold my tongue.
“I’m fine,” I say. I will not show any weakness in front of him. He
understands nothing about what I went through, and I’m not willing to
crack myself open so he can root through the deepest of my vulnerabilities.
“I should have been more mindful of that before I spoke.”
“I said it’s fine.”
“Have you ever been with someone of your own choosing?” he asks
carefully, and I can’t decide what he wants to hear. What is the purpose of
this line of questioning? Does he care about my feelings?
“Of course I have. And I don’t need your pity.” I pin him with a fierce
look, and he nods.
“I’m drawn to you,” he says next. “I don’t want you for your power—I
have enough of my own, but you must feel what I do. When our magic
touches? What we both felt when I went inside you?”
Ignoring the way his voice drops when he growls the words “inside you,”
I swallow and nod. His hand slides lower, resting on the curve of my back,
pressing me closer.
It’s impossible to deny I’m experiencing the same things he’s feeling.
I’ve been doing a pretty inadequate job of pretending.
“What do you think it means that you had the same dream I did?” I ask.
He pulls up to look at me, a wicked smile on his face. “That the universe
wants us to fuck, too.”
I huff out a mortified laugh.
“Only if we take this slowly,” I say, unable to stop the words as they slip
out. He arches one of his dark eyebrows.
“So it’s to be torture, then?” His smile stretches into one that reminds me
of what an arrogant lion must look like when it knows it’s cornered its prey.
“I’ll take you however you’ll have me, Inmate.”
“Stop calling me that,” I counter.
“Absolutely not.”
“I hate you,” I say, meaning it, too.
“I know,” he replies. “It’s why I want to break you so fucking much.”
“What if I say no? Now and tomorrow and every day after that? Will you
still help me?”
“Yes,” he says without hesitation. “That isn’t what this is about. My
promise to you has nothing to do with this.” Nothing wavers in his fierce
expression, and I want to believe him.
“Zerra. I’m going to regret this.”
But the needy ache builds in the space below my navel, demanding that I
give it what it wants.
“What if I said I wanted you to touch me?” I ask, not really sure what I
want the answer to be. Except, I do know, I’m just too much of a coward to
admit it.
“Then I’d tell you to spread your legs,” he says, his voice working its
way through every cell of my body.
“What? Here?”
“Why not?”
I glance about the room. It’s filled with people eating, drinking, and
talking, and engaging in lustful acts of their own. Not a soul is paying the
slightest bit of attention to us.
“What if someone sees?”
The corner of his mouth tips up. “Are you shy?”
“Don’t look at me like that. Like you’re so goddam superior. Of course
I’m fucking shy. Don’t tell me you’d want a roomful of people watching.”
Somehow, he pulls me closer. “Look around you. You’re amongst the Fae
and no one would care. If you asked me, I’d spread you out in the middle of
the room and feast on you for everyone to see. The only reason I’m glad
you won’t is because I want you all to myself.”
His words are spiced air and dark tendrils of smoke winding themselves
around my thighs and deep, deep into the quivering place where I want him
to touch me.
“If it makes you feel better, I won’t let anyone see. It will be our little
secret.”
He maneuvers me to the edge of the dance floor, where the light cloaks
us in shadow. It doesn’t hide us exactly, but it offers a thin blanket of
security. His hand slides down my hip, gripping it with a possession that
makes heat flare between my thighs. He’s stirred me into such arousal with
just his words, I’m worried I’ll melt into an actual puddle on the floor if I
allow him to proceed. What else can I do but test that?
“Okay,” I say, my voice shaky, as I fist the fabric of his jacket, already
feeling like I’m a pebble kicked off a cliff.
He lifts a hand and skates it along the side of my hair, his eyes bright
with swirling tendrils of blue.
“Be a good girl,” he purrs in my ear and my heart kicks in my chest.
“Spread your legs.” His hand drops lower, landing on my exposed thigh.
“You are so fucking sexy in this dress. I just about passed out when you
walked into the room.”
“Who are you?” I ask, looking up at him, completely overwhelmed.
“I am your worst nightmare, Inmate. But right now, I’m going to make
you come so hard, you’re not going to care.”
His hand slips further, finding its way beneath my skirt, a finger brushing
against the front of my underwear. He presses, rubbing me through the thin
fabric, and I gasp.
“Part of the fun is to make sure you keep quiet. Do you think you can do
that?” His finger slips under the edge, sliding through my wetness, and I
groan softly.
“I don’t know,” I say.
He brushes his lips against my ear, nipping at my neck, teeth sinking into
my flesh hard enough to make me squeak. As his finger presses my clit, my
entire body goes soft and stretched all at the same time.
I shouldn’t be doing this. I shouldn’t be letting him do this.
I already allowed myself to get swept up in one Fae royal who promised
me the world.
This has to be another mistake.
“No,” I say, pushing away suddenly. This is all too much. “I’m sorry. I
shouldn’t have done this.”
As I spin around, I don’t wait for him to reply. I’m ditching another party,
and he’s going to be furious with me. He let it go last time, but it probably
doesn’t look great for his plaything to be leaving again. But I’m too
distraught to care.
What was I thinking? I can’t let my guard down again.
I stomp through the room, bursting into the hallway where a few guests
mingle, and I suck in a deep breath. My skin is electric, my entire body
flushed with arousal and confusion and the shame that I’ve let myself get
carried away.
“Lor, come back. It’s okay.” His hand circles my biceps, and he draws me
to a stop, pulling me in close. “We don’t have to do anything you don’t
want.” He takes my hand and leads me through a door that opens to a small
stone balcony. Inhaling a deep breath of cool air, I lean against the wall and
press my hand to my chest, closing my eyes.
When I feel his presence, I open them. He stands in front of me and puts
his hands on the wall on either side of my head. “Are you okay? I didn’t
mean to make you feel uncomfortable.”
“You didn’t. I’m sorry. I just…”
“Atlas betrayed your trust. I understand.”
I bite my lip, looking up at him. “Do you?”
“Yes. But I’m being honest with you. I know I’ve given you no reason to
believe me yet, but I’m not trying to take anything from you. Not anything
you aren’t choosing to give freely. I won’t touch you again, Lor. Not unless
you ask me to.” He tips his head. “Except to keep up appearances, of
course.” He flicks his eyes in the party’s direction and then back to me.
“For appearances?” I ask, raising an eyebrow and he shrugs. “That
sounds like a loophole.”
“A necessary one. And one I might take advantage of.” He winks, but I
don’t believe that lie anymore. While this Fae definitely has some
questionable morals, forcing himself on me isn’t one of them. Of that I’m
sure. That reminder helps settle my nerves, my shoulders releasing.
“Kiss me,” I say, and his forehead furrows in surprise before his eyes turn
dark.
“You’re sure?”
I nod, my mouth suddenly dry and my stomach flipping in a pleasant, if
terrifying, way. I don’t know if I should believe him when he says he’s not
planning to take anything from me, but I do. With Atlas, I wanted to believe
him so much that I convinced myself his lies were the truth.
But that’s not what this feels like. This time, I do trust his words. Maybe
it’s foolish, and maybe I haven’t lived enough to understand who’s really
out to deceive me, but something in his expression tells me to have faith in
him, at least on this point.
“Yes, I’m sure.”
He wastes no more time as his mouth crashes into mine. There’s nothing
gentle or tender about this kiss, not that I expected there to be. It’s raw and
fierce and full of that same intensity he brings to everything. His tongue
drives into my mouth, slicking against mine, and I moan before I throw my
arms around his neck. He shifts closer, his strong body flattening me to the
stone wall against my back.
This is electric. Every hair on my body stands up and my magic, my
magic is alive like it’s never been before. It dances and sparks under my
skin. But it’s not trying to break free, it’s spinning and moving like its arms
are thrown wide, and it’s celebrating under a shower of falling stars. I feel it
slide against his as his hips drive into mine, his hard, thick cock pressing
into my stomach. He deepens the kiss, his mouth devouring me. His hands
are still dutifully planted on the wall, and I remember he said he wouldn’t
touch me unless I asked.
“Finish what you were doing in there.” I say, breaking away for a
moment. “Put your hands on me. Touch me again.”
He lets out a groan. “Here?”
“Yes. Right here.”
“Fuck,” he says as his mouth devours mine again, and his hands land on
my hips, his grip firm and possessive. “Fuck, you taste so good.” We kiss
some more, the hunger between us swelling and my thighs growing damp
from my wet and throbbing core.
“Please,” I say, my words ragged.
“As you wish, Heart Queen.”
His mouth moves to my throat, where he places a trail of hot, wet kisses
down my collarbone, moving lower. His hand cups my breast, his fingers
rolling my nipple into a tender point through the fabric. “I’m going to do
more than that, though.”
“What?” I say, opening my eyes to see him fall to his knees before he
runs his hands up my thighs. Reaching up, he kisses my stomach as his
fingers hook into the waistband of my underwear. He stops, peering up at
me, asking for permission, and I nod with my heart lodged in my throat and
the ache between my thighs bordering on pain.
He drags my underwear down, lifting one foot and then the other as he
feeds my shoe through the opening. When he’s taken them off, he stuffs
them into his jacket pocket and graces me with a villainous smile I know
I’ll see every time I close my eyes from now until the day I die.
One half of me is panting in anticipation while the other is terrified that
I’m getting myself in too deep with this Fae who could eat me for dinner
and then casually pick his teeth with my bones.
His hand slides up my calf, his grip firm on my skin. He lifts my leg and
runs his nose along the inside of my thigh, biting the soft skin hard enough
to make me gasp while my standing leg nearly buckles. As an aching thrill
shoots to where he’s nipping my skin, my head drops against the wall.
Nadir leans closer, hooking my knee over his shoulder before he presses
his face between my legs and inhales deeply. “Fuck, you smell good, too.”
I’m dimly aware of the sounds of the party not far away, but we’re
concealed here on this terrace. It’s enough to make me feel both safe and
exposed in the most exhilarating way. I grip one hand against the wall and
then the other lands on top of Nadir’s head where I grab on to his hair just
as he drags the flat of his tongue up my soaked center in a long, filthy slide.
“Oh, Zerra,” I cry out, gripping his hair tighter, loving the way it feels
between my fingers. I’ve wanted to touch it for so long. He circles the tip of
his tongue against my clit in strong, slow circles. My hips thrust, but he
uses his arm to pin me against the wall.
“Don’t move,” he orders. “I plan to take my time, Inmate.”
My knees already feel like jelly, and I’m not sure how I’m going to keep
myself standing much longer. He does as he promises, tasting and nipping
and sucking, bringing me so close to the edge I can barely stand it.
He slides a finger into me and then another, pumping them in and out as
his tongue makes rough circles against my clit. My hips jerk, and he lets me
go so I can ride his face while he lets out a deep moan of satisfaction.
“Such a good girl,” he purrs, fucking me with his hand as he peers up at
me. “I’m going to make you fall apart.” As promised, he returns to what he
was doing, his fingers curling inside me and his mouth sucking and licking.
I whimper as the tension low in my stomach winds tighter and tighter.
“Oh gods. I’m going to come.”
I’m rewarded with another hum of satisfaction before he sucks my clit
between his lips, and I fly into pieces with a ragged cry, waves of pleasure
twisting through my limbs. My back arches and my head scrapes down the
hard stone wall as I cling to the edge of the release towing me under.
Zerra, I have never felt anything like that.
When I finally stop shuddering, Nadir climbs his way up my body. His
large hand circles the back of my neck and he crushes his mouth to mine,
his tongue driving into my mouth where I taste myself. His kiss devours
me, claims me, making my knees go weak again. There is such ferocity
behind it, it almost feels like he’s telling me something. Trying to write a
message I have yet to decode.
Finally, he pulls away, our eyes meeting as we both let out quick breaths,
our chests heaving with effort. “It’s a good thing we came out here, because
you definitely aren’t quiet.”
My cheeks heat, but I roll my eyes and flip my hair back, trying to look
like I’m in control. “Yes. Well…that was all right I guess.”
He smirks, clearly seeing right through me. “I can’t wait to make you
moan like that again. And again. And again.”
He punctuates his words with another fierce kiss and then pulls away.
“We should go back to the party.”
“What about you?” I ask.
“What about me?”
“Don’t you want…”
He smirks. “I very much do, but you wanted to take it slowly and I’m
trying to earn your trust.”
I cock my head. “By giving me orgasms?”
He grins, and the smile transforms his face. I didn’t even know he was
capable of such a boyish smile. “I figure it can’t hurt.”
I huff out a laugh and then frown.
“That didn’t leave you frustrated?” I ask, wondering if this is really all a
game. Is he just trying to distract me? Is this Atlas all over again? He grabs
my hand and presses it to the front of his pants, where I feel his thick, hard
cock under my palm.
“Does this seem to you like I wasn’t affected?” he growls. “It’s taking
every shred of my willpower not to throw you over my shoulder, take you
to my room, and fuck you senseless.”
My stomach flips at his words, and I wobble a strange line between
thinking this is all the worst idea ever and very much wanting him to do
exactly as he says. He drags a finger down my cheek.
“If you don’t mind though, I should play my part as dutiful heir, and it
would make me look a little less pathetic if my date didn’t abandon me at
every event?” He tips his head, and I understand this for the question it is.
He’s asking me and giving me the choice to say no.
“Okay,” I say. “I can do that. And I’ll try not to run away this time.”
He smiles and then pushes himself away. “Thank you.”
Heading for the door, he holds it open and I slip through. We start
walking when I stop and grab his arm. “Wait. You still have my underwear.”
He pats his jacket pocket with a feral smile. “It’s mine now.” Then he
winks and starts walking again, leaving me to scurry after him with the tips
of my ears burning.
I catch up to Nadir, just as we enter the room, wholly conscious of the
slickness between my thighs and how exposed I feel, not wearing any
underwear in a crowd of so many people.
“I need a drink,” I say, and I’ve never meant those words more in my life.
Nadir turns to me with that wicked grin, pressing a hand to the small of
my back.
“You said no touching unless I said so,” I say, straightening.
“I said when we’re alone. Right now, you’re still playing the part of my
toy. Loopholes, remember?”
“I remember,” I say, before I lean into his touch. I shouldn’t love the way
his hand feels against the bared skin of my back. But I guess I’ve already
leaped off that bridge and plunged into the churning waters below.
This is just physical. He’s gorgeous. He’s got a filthy mouth and his
attention feels good. But the attention from Atlas felt good, too, and look
where that got me. Nadir has shared his truths, and I might be a fool to
believe that he wants nothing else from me.
He steers me towards a bar where they’re mixing an array of colorful
cocktails in the hues of the aurora lights. As we approach, a handsome
bartender looks up and winks. The hand on my back tightens as a low growl
comes from Nadir.
“What can I get you, beautiful?” the bartender asks with a slant of his
head. His smile is bright and his eyes are playful.
“She’ll have a—“
“Excuse me.” I cut Nadir off. “I can order my own drink.”
The bartender is looking a little less relaxed now as Nadir stares him
down.
“Then this idiot should keep his flirting to a minimum.”
I push Nadir back and step up to the bar, rolling my eyes. Nadir and I
both order a cocktail before I peer over my shoulder and narrow my gaze at
him. “I don’t belong to you, Aurora Prince. There’s no need for this act.”
No, I don’t belong to Nadir, but there’s a definite surge of butterflies in
my stomach at his obvious jealousy.
He leans in, whispering in my ear. “I just had my tongue inside you,
Inmate. Didn’t you know that Fae are very territorial?”
I scoff, but his hand wraps around my hip, pulling me towards him.
“I’m just having a drink,” I say, my tone dry.
His hand slides across my stomach, and despite the fact I had the most
toe-numbing orgasm less than ten minutes ago, I feel a spike of renewed
desire. My magic coils under my skin. Instead of its usual threaded slide,
it’s more like thousands of springs trying to bounce free.
“He knows better than to touch the prince’s plaything.”
I glare at him, his mouth stretching into a grin that is nothing less than
savage.
“Are you my plaything, too, then?” I press a hand to his chest and slide it
down, savoring the feel of his body under his shirt.
“I’m whatever you want me to be.”
Our eyes meet, and I resist the urge to look away.
The bartender finishes with our orders, sliding two short crystal glasses
across the bar. Apparently, he’s feeling bold, because he tips a smile my
way. We both take our glasses and then turn away, weaving through the
crowd.
“I think I’ll have him killed.” Nadir takes a casual sip of his drink, and I
choke on mine.
“Why?”
“I don’t like the way he was looking at you. He was watching your ass as
you walked away.”
I blow out a breath, puffing a lock of hair out of my eyes. “Is this what
you’re going to be like now?”
“This is how I always was. I’m just not hiding it anymore.”
I stare at him, wondering if I’m going to regret what I’ve just gotten
myself into. I’m sure this was a mistake, but there’s something about it that
feels like it was inevitable. I could have kept fighting it, but eventually, no
matter what I did, I would’ve ended up here, anyway. I’m definitely not
sure why that is.
Still, I can’t shake the feeling that he’s going to ruin me. Maybe not in
the same way Atlas nearly did, but ruin me all the same, perhaps with much
more permanent consequences.
“You’re going to ruin me, too, Inmate,” he says softly, making me realize
I just said at least part of that out loud. “Lucky for you, we’ll go down in
the blaze together.”
Chapter Twenty-five

W e spend the next two days scouring every wing and room of the
Keep, hoping I’ll feel something as we delve into each dark corner.
The tone of our interactions has shifted significantly. Nadir has made no
advances, holding to his promise that he wouldn’t touch me unless I asked
him. I need more time to think before I pursue this any further.
I have a lot of trauma to unpack that goes beyond just what happened
with Atlas. Spending years compartmentalizing my torture and my abuse
allows me to function in a somewhat normal way, but I’m not foolish
enough to think it means I won’t have to face it, eventually. But that’s a
luxury I don’t have time for right now. One day in the future, when I’ve
ensured Tristan and Willow are relatively safe, when I’ve secured a stable
future for us, then maybe I’ll have that freedom. For now, I do what I must
to survive.
“Let’s go down to the catacombs,” Nadir says after another fruitless
afternoon of searching.
“What’s that?”
“An abandoned area of the Keep. I don’t think it’s been used for anything
in centuries, but now that I think about it, it might be an ideal place to hide
something of value.”
His expression is thoughtful as he directs me through the wide hallways.
As we clatter down a narrow stone staircase, I go quiet. They say smell can
be one of the strongest triggers of memory, and it’s at that moment that I’m
assaulted by a barrage of buried recollections. The crisp scent of magic. The
odors of sweat and blood and vomit. The taste of dusty, forgotten corners
and the stench of despair.
As we near the bottom, I stumble on the stone steps, pitching forward and
crashing into Nadir. He swings around to catch me by the waist before I
topple down the rest of the way. My breath is coming in quick gasps, and I
clutch at my chest as my heart thrashes against my ribs.
“What’s wrong?” he asks, picking me up and descending the remaining
few steps before placing me on the ground. The surrounding hallway
sharpens into agonizing clarity. I know those archways and those doors and
the dark places they lead. Screams, ones I’ve long since repressed, echo in
my ears. My body tenses and my limbs tremble.
“You’re shaking. What’s the matter?” he asks, his tone fierce and his eyes
blazing. “Tell me what’s wrong.”
“I can’t.” I shake my head, tears burning my eyes. “I can’t…” I don’t
know what I’m trying to say. I can’t tell him. The words won’t come out. I
can’t be here. I need to get away. “Please.”
Finally, he understands what I’m unable to voice because he scoops me
into his arms and flies back up the stairs. He doesn’t pause as we return to
the main level, and he delivers me straight back to his room.
When we get inside, he sits me on the sofa, draping my shoulders in a
blanket. He then heads to the fireplace, where he stokes the logs, coaxing
out a roaring flame. I can’t stop shaking. My clothing sticks to my skin
under a thin sheen of sweat.
His eyes keep returning to me as he next heads to the bar, pours out a
generous portion of whisky, and then sits down before he places the glass
on the table. A moment later, he hauls me on to his lap and wraps me in his
arms.
Instantly, I sink into him, pressing my head to his shoulder while his chin
rests against my forehead. We say nothing for several long minutes as he
holds still and waits for me to process what I’m going through.
After a few minutes, he asks softly, “What just happened?” I let out a
deep, shaky breath. “Does this have to do with my father?”
“How did you know?” I ask, looking at him.
He tips his head with an uncertain pull on his mouth. “Call it a lucky
guess.”
I bite my bottom lip, the words hanging on the roof of my mouth. The
only people who know what happened are Tristan and Willow, and they’ve
tried for years to get me to talk about it, but I’ve always refused. Partly
because I didn’t want them to feel any guilt for what I suffered, and partly
because revisiting those moments only dredged up the pain.
“Tell me,” he says. The words are soft, but there is a command in his
tone. “I want to know what he did to you. Please.”
Nadir is watching me with a mixture of ferocity and stoic understanding.
I remember his words about his father. When he told me he hated him, too.
There was a brutality in that statement, like a wound that had been ripped
open and left to fester. This Fae, who has turned me into a complete mess,
might be the only other person in the world who truly understands my
loathing for the king.
Taking a deep breath, I slide off his lap, not because I don’t want him to
touch me, but because everything about him overwhelms me, and I need the
clarity of distance. Sliding the blanket off, I sit on the table so I can face
him and pick up the glass of whisky. I will my nerves to settle as I take a
deep, long sip.
“When your father’s soldiers found us in the woods, they killed my
parents,” I say softly, the words coalescing around me with a starkness like
it was yesterday. “They found me and Willow in an underground cellar
where my father hid us. I didn’t even know it existed until that day, but
clearly my parents had built it, expecting something like that to happen.”
My voice feels like a wooden puppet, the words hollow and yet pulsing
with the lives that were taken. Nadir’s hand lands on my knee, his large
palm warm, but there is nothing suggestive in the touch. He’s only trying to
offer comfort.
“You can tell me,” he says. “There is nothing you can say that will shock
me when it comes to my father.”
I nod and continue. “They found Tristan hiding in the woods, and he
fought like a wildcat. Killed three of your father’s soldiers before they
could restrain him. I was so proud of him.” I smile at the memory, even if
it’s a gruesome one. “My brother is the bravest man I know.
“We were tossed into a locked cart and taken to The Aurora. I don’t know
how long it took, but we were barely fed and were forced to go to the
bathroom in our clothing. They refused to let us out. We slept like that for
days. It was awful.” Nadir’s hand tightens on my knee, his dark eyes
burning with fury.
“Eventually we arrived at Nostraza. I remember how big your father
seemed. He was like a giant. He told us we were to forget who we were. To
never mention it to anyone. If we did, he would ensure that two of us died
while the third one watched. Which one was to be a surprise. But he didn’t
just forget us there. At least not right away.”
I swallow as the memories churn closer to the surface before I take
another sip of alcohol. “We were all locked in our human forms, as my
mother had instructed us, but somehow, your father knew it was hiding our
High Fae forms. He started with Tristan and Willow and easily forced them
to shift so he could test the levels of their magic. As they told you, they
both had little and allowed him to see it.”
I take a deep breath, looking at my hands as my fingers grip the glass.
“Then he focused on me. At the time, I didn’t know why he was so intent
on finding my magic, but when you told me what a Primary is when we
were at the manor house, I knew. That’s what he had been searching for.
But even without knowing that, some instinct told me it would be
dangerous if he knew what I was capable of. I may have been a child, but I
understood that powerful magic was a gift to be coveted.
“So I told him I had no magic. That I was as powerless as Willow, and
the only thing I could do was slide into my human form. I don’t know why
he didn’t believe me. Maybe he knew something already. Whatever it was,
he was determined to prove me wrong.
“For months, for years, he brought me into the Keep regularly—to the
catacombs, as you called them. There, he tried everything he could to get
my magic out of me. He tortured me and tormented me with his power.”
I look up at Nadir to see a myriad of emotions reflected in his eyes.
Anger. Pain. Rage.
“But I was stronger. I held out.” Then I let out a breath. “But his magic
wasn’t like yours. It looked different. It felt different. It was darker and
smokier. It bore the scent of death. He dug and dug into my heart and my
mind and my bones, searching for it. After enough time, I knew that if he
discovered it, my life was over. Either he’d kill me or find some way to use
me. And so I hung on. I locked it away.
“I endured the beatings when he’d get so frustrated that he’d resort to
thrashing me with his fists. I endured it all until, finally, one day, he
stopped. I’ll never forget the last time he tossed me back into Nostraza, and
I never heard from or saw him again.”
My breath is in shreds, and my chest is heaving as though I’ve just run a
great distance. I’ve never spoken those words aloud to anyone, and I feel
both lighter and as heavy as a block of iron. When I look at Nadir, there is
so much dark wrath in his expression, I blink and lean back.
He shakes his head and then closes his eyes, taking in a long, slow
breath. His hands are trembling, as though he’s trying very hard to restrain
himself.
“So he doesn’t think you’re the Primary,” Nadir says slowly. “This makes
so much more sense.”
“I don’t know what he believed in the end, but he gave up. What makes
sense?”
“That he let you go so easily. When we found out you’d been taken, he
sent me to look for you, but he never seemed all that concerned. I thought
he was pretending to throw me off the trail, but he also told me that while
he hoped you’d once prove useful to him, you no longer were. Why didn’t
he just kill you three and get it over with?”
I flinch at his words, and his shoulders drop before he rubs a hand down
his face. “I’m sorry. I didn’t mean it like that.”
“I think it was insurance. Just in case we turned out to prove useful. But
as we all matured into adults, I think he realized that wasn’t going to
happen. Maybe he just forgot we were there.”
“Maybe,” he says. “What does your magic do? Can you remember?”
I nod before taking another sip, planning to hold these cards close to my
chest. “I remember a little. Lightning. It’s red and it can destroy practically
anything. And I can heal people, but I can also tear them apart. Make them
bleed out from the inside. Those are the most noticeable gifts.”
“When was the last time you used it?”
“It’s been over a decade. I was about ten when my mother insisted I stop.
She lived in fear of our discovery and was sure it would draw unwanted
attention. Of course, now I know why.”
Nadir’s jaw flexes. “What about your brother?”
“You’ll have to ask him. Those are his secrets to tell,” I say, knowing
Tristan wouldn’t want me to share this without his knowledge. Nadir gives
me a hard look. “Don’t worry, next time I see him, I’ll put in a good word
for you.”
The corner of his mouth ticks up for a fraction of a second. Then he peers
at me and tips his head. His hand rests on my knee again and it tightens. “I
know the memories are hard, but do you think you can try to search the
catacombs with me?”
I inhale a deep breath, placing the glass on the table and pressing my
hands under my legs. Nadir shifts so his knees sit sandwiched on the
outsides of mine. His knuckles brush along my calves, and I am painfully
aware of his touch and his presence. He’s breaking his rule about not
touching me, but I don’t mind. A gesture of comfort isn’t what I meant
when I laid down those terms.
“I’ll try,” I whisper. “I want to find it, too. I don’t want to stay like this
anymore.”
“I’m sorry,” he says, and I frown. “I’m sorry that I sat by and let that all
happen. I didn’t know, but if—”
He doesn’t finish the thought, and our gazes meet, a moment flickering
between us. I look away, picking up the whisky and taking another sip. It
burns down my throat, warming my stomach.
“Does that help?” he asks, his hands still cupped around my knees, and I
shrug.
“They healed most of them in Aphelion, but I used to be covered in
scars,” I say, and his eyes darken with more smoldering fury. He reaches
out, his thumb gently brushing my cheek, where I know the bottom tip of
my scar sits.
“It’s ugly, I know. But it’s a reminder,” I say, waiting for him to grimace
or make a scathing remark.
“It’s not ugly at all. It’s noble.”
I let out a small huff. “Noble?”
“It speaks to something important about your character that you wear it
so proudly. I’ve never, for one moment, thought it was ugly. I remember the
first time I saw you at the ball, how beautiful you were.”
I take another sip of my drink just so I can look away, because I’m on the
verge of cracking.
“I’m going to make him regret it all,” Nadir says, a deadly edge to his
words. “I’m going to take him apart piece by piece. It’s always been my
deepest desire, but now, it’s a need more violent than the need to draw air
from the bottom of a lake. I’ll make him hurt.”
There is such raw certainty in that statement that my stomach clenches.
“I want him dead,” I say. “It’s one of the few things that has kept me
going through all this. The drive to make sure he pays.”
Nadir nods, those swirling eyes burning with colors as he stares at me.
“Drink some more.”
“Why do you hate him?” I ask, wanting to understand more about this
dark prince. “Your feelings for him are more complex than just the things
he’s done on the surface. Why do you hate him so much, prince of The
Aurora?”
I whisper the words, but they echo in the quiet room. The fire crackles
and pops, and Nadir seems to weigh something in his mind.
“You trusted me with another of your truths,” Nadir says. “Don’t think I
take that lightly. So instead of telling you, I’ll show you.”
Chapter Twenty-six

N adir and I walk through an area that’s unfamiliar to me.


“We haven’t searched here,” I remark.
“No. I doubt my father would store anything of importance in this wing.
Keep your senses open just in case, though.”
I nod and do as he asks as we continue our march through the halls. He’s
quiet and tense, his expression growing harder the further we go.
Finally, we arrive at a set of wide black doors, and he grasps the handle
before easing it open. I get the sense he’s about to entrust me with a secret
he shares with very few people.
“Come on,” he says, and I follow him into a large bedroom decorated in
silver and cobalt. It has the same black floors and one of those long
windows that looks outside, but it’s like someone attempted to make this
room cozier and more homey than the rest of the Keep. Soft lighting casts
shadows across the room, and a fire crackles merrily in the hearth.
Nadir looks at me with his jaw tensed, and my senses flare in alert.
Finally, I notice the chair that faces the window standing next to the bed.
There’s a figure sitting in it, so still it’s easy to miss anyone is there. Nadir
holds out his hand for me and, without thinking, I slip mine into it. His
warmth carries up my arm and disperses through my pores, my magic
purring like a cat luxuriating in a sunbeam.
He leads me towards the figure in the chair. It’s a Fae with dark hair and
eyes the color of amethysts. She looks just like Nadir and Amya, and there’s
absolutely no doubt in my mind that this must be the Aurora Queen.
“This is why I hate him. Or at least why I hate him the most,” Nadir says
softly. He lets go of my hand and drops into a crouch in front of the queen.
She continues to stare out the window. I realize she has no idea we’re here
as I watch her unblinking stare and the way she sits like she’s carved from
granite.
“What happened to her?” I ask, sinking to my knees next to him. I don’t
know why, but I want to be on the same level right now.
“My father, that’s what.”
I sink further, sitting on the carpet and leaning against the window, my
legs bent and my arms wrapped around them as I stare up at her. “She’s
beautiful.”
Nadir nods from his crouch before he slides over to sit next to me. We’re
just barely touching, and I resist the urge to lean closer.
“She was. She still is. But she’s not who she once was.”
He takes a deep breath, and I wait for him to gather himself, sensing he
needs a moment before he unburdens his mind with the demons that plague
him.
“When my parents were young—when my father was still the Aurora
Prince—he met my mother at a party. Her name is Meora. It was actually
during Frostfire. They had a little too much to drink. One thing led to
another, and they ended up sleeping together.
“My father wasn’t interested in her, though. He’d just been using my
mother to make the female he loved jealous. And it worked. So he rejected
my mother and sent her away, planning to bond with the Fae he loved.”
My lip curls in disdain. Why does none of this surprise me so far?
Nadir stretches out a long leg and hooks his arm over his knee, keeping
his gaze on his mother.
“But then a few months later, my mother showed up, pregnant with me.
At first, my father tried to get rid of her, but as soon as she was sent away,
the Aurora Torch went haywire.”
“What do you mean?” I ask.
“It lit up, sparking colorful flames that nearly burned down the throne
room when they caught the curtains. No one had ever seen it do that before.
It wasn’t until my mother was called back that it finally settled down, and
then they all knew. My mother was carrying the future Aurora Primary in
her womb. That day, all our fates were sealed.”
Nadir meets my gaze, and I read the pain in his eyes.
“My father had no choice but to bond with my mother and ascend with
her to become king and queen. I don’t know what ever became of the Fae
my father loved. If she ever returned, I never saw her.”
Nadir’s head tips back, thunking as it hits the window. “My father was
furious. Blamed my mother for entrapping him and tricking him into having
sex with her.” Nadir snorts. “As if his cock just accidentally fell into her.”
I frown at the bitterness in his voice, itching to reach out to him. It’s clear
how much this is affecting him, and a part of me wants to offer comfort, but
it doesn’t feel like this is where our relationship is just yet. Whatever a
relationship between us means.
“He never forgave her. And consequently, never forgave me for being the
child that kept him from the Fae he loved. My mother sheltered me by her
side at every moment because she didn’t trust what he might do. She
refused to allow a nanny or anyone else to help her, worried one of them
might have been working for him.
“He was a monster to her every day of her life, except for a brief
interlude around my fiftieth year. I don’t know why, but they were happy
for a short time. I’ll never forget it. That’s when Amya was born, and I
thought my father finally saw in her the life he had imagined for himself.
Even if he still hated me, I didn’t care, as long as he loved my mother and
my sister.”
I turn to face him, resting my head on the window as I stare. The cold
glass is soothing against my cheek.
“But Amya chose me over him. Even as a toddler, she was so enamored
with me, she’d follow me everywhere. Maybe she sensed the cruelty in our
father. Maybe she knew how much he would eventually hurt and disappoint
her, in the end. Whatever it was, she chose me in a battle I didn’t even know
I was fighting.
“That brief respite of temporary joy she’d brought to my father
evaporated when he understood he came second to me in her eyes. And that
was it. He shut out my mother for good. It was around then she just
stopped…existing. I think she’d been so hopeful things were finally
changing that when she realized they hadn’t, it simply broke what was left
of her heart. I don’t know if she loved him, but I know she wanted to try.
She retired to this room and stopped speaking.
“Another reason I want my father gone is to free her from this. Anyone
bonded to a Primary can’t die on their own. As long as he keeps living,
she’ll do the same, no matter what happens to her. As much as I want her to
get better, I don’t think she ever will. She’s lived this way for more than two
hundred years, and I think what she craves most now is the promised peace
of the Evanescence.”
I frown at that. “Wouldn’t he be there, too?”
“He would, but if it’s paradise like they claim, then I’d hope she could
find some joy far, far away from him. As it stands, she’s trapped here.”
“How does it work?”
“The ascension bond is truly binding. They can feel each other’s
emotions, and they can’t ever be too far apart. The pain becomes terrible, or
so I’m told. When you’re bonded to someone who hates you, then it’s truly
a sort of prison.”
“Wow,” I say, at a loss for words. That’s what Atlas wanted to do to me.
Bind me to him forever, never able to have a life of my own.
Nadir lets out a drawn-out sigh.
“Amya blames herself. She doesn’t admit it to me, but I know she thinks
if she’d just chosen our father, then our mother wouldn’t have broken.”
“She was a child,” I say, leaping to the defense of the princess. “She
didn’t know. Of course she went with the person she felt safer with.”
Nadir’s face is grim. “That’s what I tell her, too, and she says she accepts
that, but I can tell by the way she avoids coming here that the guilt eats at
her. If anyone is to blame, it’s me.”
“Why do you say that?”
“If I’d been better about protecting her, maybe he wouldn’t have turned
her into this.” Nadir looks at his mother with a longing I never imagined I’d
see from him. Something twists deep in my chest. I know there’s no point in
telling him this wasn’t his fault. I can see that he’s wearing that shame like a
shield. It’s a feeling I understand all too well, and that it’s something only
he can work through.
I huff out a breath. “Poor Amya.” And then I look at him. “And you, too.
It kind of explains a few things.”
Nadir raises a brow. “What things?”
“Nothing. Never mind.” I’m not about to explain that maybe his asshole
tendencies are a direct result of how he’s been treated by his father. The
dark chuckle that follows tells me that maybe he understands what I’m not
saying.
“Do you come here often?” I ask.
“Every day that I’m in the Keep. I try to never be away for too long.”
“I don’t understand you,” I say as he looks at me with an expectant
expression. “You don’t seem to care about anyone other than your sister and
Mael, and yet, you do things like this or try to clean up the slums and feed
people. You don’t make sense.”
His mouth crooks into a wry grimace. “I don’t take pleasure in other’s
suffering simply for the sake of it.” His jaw tightens and we both know who
he’s alluding to. “I don’t want to rule by fear or by the will of my hand.
That doesn’t breed loyalty or devotion. Someone very wise told me a long
time ago that a kingdom with happy subjects will always be the most
prosperous one. That’s what The Aurora deserves. Not to have the threat of
everything taken from them if they put a toe out of line.”
“Why do you have such a blind spot when it comes to Nostraza, then?” I
ask. “Why allow that to exist?”
He shakes his head. “Because I believed some people, no matter what
they’re given, are irredeemable. That everyone who was there deserved to
be.”
“And now?”
“And now I’m a little less sure about that.”
It’s not much, but it’s a definite shift from my first weeks back in The
Aurora, when he kept me trapped in the manor.
“Why are there only humans in Nostraza? Are there other prisons for
High Fae? Or low fae?” It’s something I’ve wondered ever since I learned
of the low fae’s existence.
He shakes his head. “No. Low fae who are accused of crimes are
executed without a thought. There is no trial and no questions are asked.”
My jaw drops open. “And High Fae don’t go to prison. They pay a fine or if
their crime is bad enough, they might be subjected to a few weeks of house
arrest. But that’s about the extent of it.”
I blow out a breath, understanding that this prince and this kingdom, and
this battle I’m waging, have so many more layers than just what’s at stake
for me and my family.
Then he lifts his head as he pins me with a dark look.
“Despite everything I just said, make no mistake, Inmate. If anyone or
anything gets in the way of what I want, I will stop at nothing to destroy
them.”
His words sound like a vow, and I believe them with my entire heart.
“And what is it you want, oh prince of The Aurora?”
“In the immediate an end to my father’s rule. And the rest…I’m still
deciding on that. I’ve found my earlier priorities might be shifting.”
“And what is it you really want from me?”
His grin is wicked, the suggestion in his eyes obvious. ”I think I’ve made
that clear.”
“That’s it?”
“I want your help in deposing my father, but beyond that…no.” The last
word comes out strangled, like it isn’t entirely the truth. “And you’re
wrong. There’s one other person I care about.”
“Who?” I ask.
“You.”
I scoff. “You didn’t care about me when I was rotting away in Nostraza.”
“A mistake.”
“I’m not sure I believe that.”
“Perhaps I’ll yet prove it to you.” It feels like a promise, and the idea
makes me nervous, my insides squirming with discomfort. I want nothing
from the Aurora Prince.
I want to get my Crown, and I want to get as far away from here as
possible.
I blink at him and say, “Perhaps.”
Chapter Twenty-seven

W e continue sitting in silence for several more minutes. The Aurora


Queen stares unblinking out the window, and I wonder what’s
going on in her head. This is no way to live, and my hatred for the king
coalesces into something even more sharp and jagged. I don’t know this
queen and she means nothing to me, but the way Nadir just spoke slices a
piece of me away.
I think about what he said. About how the Torch started acting strangely
when she’d been carrying him in her womb.
“Do you think,” I start carefully, “the Aurora Torch would talk to me,
too?”
Nadir’s gaze snaps to mine, the colors in his eyes swirling. He blinks.
“Why the fuck didn’t I think of that?”
“You think it could work?”
“There’s only one way to find out.” Nadir stands and holds out a hand to
me. I take it and he pulls me up. We’re standing so close I have to crane my
neck to look up at him, and this entire exchange seems to have shifted the
fabric between us.
His eyes drop to my mouth, and I feel that slight movement arrow
straight through my torso where my thighs tighten. He had his tongue inside
me a few days ago, but that was just base desire and need. An itch we were
both scratching. The look in his eyes right now feels like something
different, and I don’t know how to reconcile that. Nadir still represents
every minute of misery I lived through for twelve long years.
Clearing my throat, I step back and smooth down my sweater. He snaps
out of whatever spell was pulling us under and turns to his mother. Bending
over, he presses his mouth to her forehead, lingering for a long second
before he pulls away. When he looks at me, his usual fierce expression is in
place.
“Let’s go see if the Torch will speak to you, Inmate.”
Once again, we’re on the move, winding through the halls as we make
our way to the heart of the Keep. The corridors are quiet, everyone resting
after all the late-night parties.
We traipse down a wide hall, the occasional guard eyeing us as we pass.
Nadir grabs my hand, then wraps his arms around my shoulders.
“It’s really big, sweetheart,” he says. “You’ll love it. You know what they
say about the size of a prince’s Torch?” And then he winks and I roll my
eyes. I guess I’m supposed to pretend I’m his plaything, and he’s trying to
impress me.
At the end of the hall is a wide set of doors that stretch way above our
heads. Two guards flank them, one nodding to Nadir as he grasps the large
iron ring that serves as a handle and hauls it open on silent hinges.
I marvel as we enter the enormous space, reminded of the day I woke up
in Aphelion and was taken to the Sun Palace throne room to meet Atlas. But
where Aphelion’s throne room had been bright and gleaming, The Aurora’s
exists in direct contrast, with shiny black floors and glittering black walls
that sparkle with flashes of colors. Just like in Aphelion, the ceiling is a
curved glass dome, this one opening to the grey Aurora sky.
Our footsteps click as we enter, the sound echoing off the room’s high
corners. Ahead sit two massive black thrones, carved from more of that
glittering stone I’ve become so familiar with. On the wall behind them is a
mural of sorts, but this is no simple painting. Ribbons of color move and
slide against each other, creating a slow, mesmerizing dance, just like the
real lights in the sky. For a moment, I lose myself in its hypnotizing waves.
Nadir is still holding my hand, and he squeezes it, bringing me back to
the present. It’s a direct contrast to the Sun Palace, but there is also
something monumental about this place. Something profound in the
absence of light. With a strange lurch in my stomach, I look at the Fae
standing next to me, so perfectly bred to fit into this room, with that dark
hair and those swirling eyes. I get the strangest sense I’m looking into a
future yet to happen.
“Are you okay?” he asks, and I shake my head before he tugs on my
hand and we make our way to the front of the room.
Suspended between the two thrones is a bracer, and in it sits a large black
torch, a warm flame flickering in its mouth. We stop in front of it, and I’m
again struck by the most profound sense of destiny. Like every moment of
the past twenty-four years have schemed and plotted to bring me to this
place.
“It’s not that big,” I joke, trying to dispel the tension creeping up my
back, and Nadir snorts.
“Wait until you see it up close,” he replies, and I’m pretty sure we’re not
talking about the Torch anymore.
“What do I do? How do I talk to it?”
I feel him shake his head next to me. “Try lifting it up. That’s how the
ascension happens.” I swallow and stare at it, wondering if this is
ridiculous. Why did the Mirror talk to me? What if I just imagined the
whole thing?
Letting go of Nadir’s hand, I step forward. Then I turn back to look at
him where he now stands with his hands stuffed into his pockets. He tips his
head but doesn’t rush me as I brace myself for what might come next.
Then I reach out and grasp the Torch. It’s carved from a dark material I
don’t recognize and is cool to the touch. I lift it out of its brackets, surprised
to find it’s fairly light. For a moment, nothing happens, the bright orange
flame continuing to flicker, but then it begins to turn colors, flashing from
violet to crimson to emerald.
A moment later, Nadir moves next to me, his forehead creased.
“Is it supposed to do that?”
He shakes his head. “Sure, but usually only for the ascended.” He looks
down at me, a line between his brows. “Who are you, Heart Queen?”
I open my mouth and then close it, not entirely sure how to answer that.
Ah, what do we have here?
The voice pops into my head, and the room around me melts away. I’m
standing in another room now, the torch no longer in my hands. The floors
are covered in rainbow glass, and there don’t seem to be any walls. Just
stretches of blurred color that fling out into the distance.
Well, well, well. You’ve come to see me, Your Majesty? I heard a rumor
that you were out and about.
“Do you know who I am?”
Of course I know. I remember you. All those years you’ve spent so close
to me. Nearly within my reach.
The voice moves around me as though it’s a person circling me slowly,
assessing me from every side.
So you’re what has the prince in such knots lately. I’ve never felt his
turmoil so acutely, Heart Queen. What is it about you that is affecting him
so strongly?
I swallow, unsure of how to answer.
“I’m looking for the Heart Crown. Do you know where it is?”
There is a pause of silence, and I think it won’t answer.
It isn’t in the place you’re looking.
“It’s not in the Keep? Or in The Aurora?”
That I can’t answer for sure. But I don’t feel it anywhere near me.
“Can you feel the Artefacts?”
Sometimes I can. That doesn’t mean it’s not near, but it’s far enough away
that I cannot feel it.
“That doesn’t make any sense.”
I’m sorry, but it’s the best I can do, Heart Queen.
“You knew who I was all along? Why did you never tell the Aurora
King?”
My loyalty is first to Ouranos and to my goddess Zerra, Your Majesty.
Then to my king. But his heart is dark, and Ouranos would have only stood
to lose if he had known. It would have only suffered.
“But the prince knows. Is that not dangerous?”
The torch pauses again and I wait, spinning around in the strange void,
not sure where I’m supposed to be looking. The feeling is entirely
disorienting.
No. I do not think it is. The prince wants something from you, but it is not
your power.
I inhale a deep breath, feeling a strange shift behind my heart.
But…that way lies only heartbreak, Your Majesty. That way lies only
ruin.
I blink. “What do you mean?”
It says nothing and I wait.
“What do you mean by that? Please tell me.”
Still, it says nothing, and I squeeze my hands into fists.
“Hello? Answer me!”
Suddenly my hands turn scalding hot, and I scream as I’m hurled back to
the throne room, nearly dropping the Torch.
Nadir catches it from my fumble and then moves to replace it in the
brackets before he turns to me. I shake out my hands, staring at them, but
the skin is unblemished.
“What happened?”
“It spoke to me,” I say in a whisper, and he lets out a deep breath.
“Why do the Artefacts talk to you? You aren’t ascended yet.”
“I don’t know.” I shake my head and rub my arms, chilled in a way that
has nothing to do with being cold.
“What did it say?”
I look up at him, still trying to rub the feeling back into my hands,
something bottoming out of my stomach. The torch said I was safe with
Nadir. That he wanted something from me, but it wasn’t my power.
But it could only end in heartbreak and ruin.
Why does it suddenly feel like I’ve lost something I never had to begin
with?
“What did it say? Did you ask about the Crown?”
I shake my head. “Yes. It said it didn’t think it was close by.”
“What do you mean? In the Keep or in The Aurora?”
“I asked the same thing, and it wasn’t sure. It just said that it couldn’t feel
it.”
Nadir runs a hand through his hair and lets out a frustrated noise. “But
that means it still exists, at least.”
I nod, slowly. “Yes, I suppose it does.”
“Well, that’s something.” Nadir paces a few steps and then turns back to
me. “What is it?”
I realize I’m staring at him, still thinking about what the Torch said. How
will this Fae break my heart? How will he ruin me?
“Nothing. That was just a little disconcerting. I’m fine.”
Nadir gives me a slow nod. “Then we still need to check the catacombs,
just to be sure. After that, I think we can safely say it’s not in the Keep. Do
you think you can do that? What if we give it a day or two?”
I nod. “Okay. I can try. What if I don’t feel anything there?”
Nadir runs a hand along the back of his neck, his dark eyes swirling with
crimson ribbons of light.
“Then we have to decide our next move.”
Chapter Tweny-eight

A fter we leave the throne room, we head back to Nadir’s wing of the
Keep. Unable to get warm, I decide to take a hot bath. I need some
space to think. There are so many things to consider—the lack of any more
news about the Crown and the fact the Torch always knew who I was as I
rotted away inside Nostraza.
And, of course, what it said about Nadir.
That I tied him into knots and that he was after something else from me.
Nadir said he wants me physically, and that’s all it is, and I’m trying to
believe him. But sometimes when I catch him studying me, it feels like
there’s something he isn’t saying. I shake my head. This is silly. He’s a
prince, and I’m a prisoner from Nostraza. I want nothing from this Fae.
But what had the Torch meant about heartbreak? That Nadir would break
my heart? He can’t do that if I don’t give it to him. That’s something he’ll
never have from me. I nearly lost it to Atlas, and I won’t make that mistake
again.
The problem is, I haven’t been able to stop thinking about the party when
he kissed me and touched me and tasted me. It’s stirred me into a constant
state of restlessness. I don’t know where to put my hands or where to look
when I’m around him. I can’t keep pretending that I don’t want him to kiss
me again or make good on everything he promised.
The water goes cold while I stew about the prince, undoing the entire
purpose of this relaxing hot bath. Resigned to shivering for the night, I
finally drag myself out, putting on a lacy black bra and underwear and tying
on a silky magenta robe.
When I emerge from the bathroom, the room is warm, and the fireplace is
blazing, where Nadir’s ice hounds lie with their eyes closed. They’ve
become decidedly less hostile around me in the past week, which allows me
to ease into my place here a little.
He sits on a plush chair, staring at the fire, his gaze flicking up. There’s
something luxurious and rumpled about him, the top buttons of his shirt
undone and his hair loose around his shoulders. A glass balances on his
thigh, filled with the whisky he’s so fond of, his large hand cupping the top.
He’s beautiful, but I steel myself against those thoughts. He is my enemy.
The Fae Prince that sat in this luxurious Keep while I lived with less than
nothing.
This dark prince will never have my heart.
The Torch did me a favor today, reminding me to remain focused on what
matters. The Crown. Willow and Tristan. Our family legacy.
No, he will never have my heart, but after what he did at the party the
other night, I need to even the score. I refuse to owe the Aurora Prince
anything. Sex has never been about love for me. It’s been about survival,
and often, pleasure.
Tonight, it will straddle the line of both.
Slowly, I approach, the silk of my robe tickling my ankles, deciding I’m
just the right amount of naked for the plan that has suddenly taken root in
my head.
His eyes never leave me as I draw near. They’re full of hungry calm.
Like an eagle about to swoop in on a mouse. I say nothing as I take the
glass from his hand and set it on the table. Then I lift a knee and straddle his
lap, his breath responding with a sharp incline. The robe still covers me, the
fabric bunching around my hips. But all it would take is one pull on the tie
for it to fall open. Clearly, we’re both thinking about it as we both look
down and then back up.
I lick my lips before I say, “You said you wouldn’t touch me unless I
asked?”
He nods, his eyes scanning me.
“You let me hold your hand today,” he says.
“That’s true. But you know I didn’t mean that kind of touch.”
He smirks, the corner of his mouth tipping up to reveal a dimple in his
cheek that practically shreds my heart.
“Can I touch you?” I ask with a tilt of my head.
“You can do whatever you fucking want to me.” His voice is rough, like
a file dragging along a stone, and it makes my stomach tighten. He leans in.
“The dirtier the better.”
I place my hands on his shoulders and slide them down the planes of his
chest, feeling the ridges and dips of his muscle through the fabric of his
shirt.
His hands come to my hips, his fingers digging in. It sets off a wave of
longing I barely recognize before I wrap my fingers around his wrists and
place his hands back on the chair’s armrests.
“Ah-ah, I didn’t say you could touch me.”
His eyes light up, emerald flecks sparking. “So you can touch me, but I
can’t touch you?”
I tip my head. “Does that change your previous answer?”
“Fuck no.”
I clamp down on the smile that threatens to surface at the earnestness in
his tone before I return my hands to his chest and continue my exploration.
He holds still and seems to be simultaneously trying not to breathe while
fighting for air like he’s drowning.
I reach for the button of his shirt and open it, followed by the next,
spreading the fabric wide.
“What are you doing?” he asks with that barely restrained edge in his
voice. I open another button and then another, baring smooth brown skin
and the swirls of those colorful markings that flow over his chest.
“I like looking at you,” I whisper, having trouble breathing myself. I
press my hand flat to his skin where I can feel the rapid pounding of his
heart.
“I like looking at you, too. Very much.”
In response to that, I offer him a coy smile. Standing up from the chair, I
back up and pull on the tie of my robe, letting it slide from my shoulders
and drop to the ground.
“Fuck,” he says with a breathless sigh before he rubs a hand down his
face. There is such raw hunger in his eyes that I feel a warm throb below
my navel. “I’d like to look at even more of you.” His eyebrows raise at the
hopeful suggestion.
I snort a laugh. “That’s not happening.”
“Then what, Heart Queen?”
Zerra, why does he have to call me that? I should tell him to stop, but I
love the way he makes it sound. Like it’s always been waiting for me and
all I have to do is walk up and take it.
I slide my knee back onto the chair and then return to my previous
position, feeling the telltale evidence of how this is affecting him press
against the thin fabric of my underwear. When I roll my hips, we both
moan. This feels better than it should. Maybe this is a bad idea, but I can’t
seem to stop myself, either.
As much as I hate him, I also can’t stop wanting to touch him. It’s
become a fundamental need as important as water and air.
His hands clench on the armrests, his body a tightly coiled spring. “Let
me touch you,” he says, with a command that nearly makes me relent, but I
shake my head instead.
“Then touch yourself for me. Squeeze your breasts.”
I raise an eyebrow, thrilling at the order in a way that surprises me. But I
do as he asks, cupping my hands around them and pushing them together
while he lets out a shuddering breath as his cock grows stiffer.
“Touch your pussy,” he says with a growl. “Take off your underwear. Let
me see how wet and pink you are.”
I want to do it. Every part of me wonders what it might feel like to have
him watching me. But I won’t give him what he wants. This moment is
about what I want. About taking back a semblance of the control I’ve
allowed to slip away.
Ignoring his request, I tease my nipples through the lace of my bra. His
eyes never leave me. Then I grab his shoulders before I roll my hips again,
rubbing his thick length along my now wet and aching core.
The chair creaks, because he’s gripping the armrests so tight I think he’s
close to tearing them right off. I swivel my hips another time, letting out a
gasp as his head drops back, and he groans. “You’re fucking killing me.”
I finish what I started with his shirt, opening it the rest of the way and
baring his stomach. I decide I want to lick it, so I roll my hips one more
time—this one’s for me—before I slide off his lap and fall to my knees.
“What are you doing?”
I place a kiss to the center of his chest and then drag my mouth along his
taut stomach, licking and nipping the skin as his muscles tense.
“Please,” he begs. “I need to touch you.”
I peer up at him through my lashes, giving him my best evil smile as I
reach for the button of his pants and flick it open.
“Fuck,” he says again as he realizes what I intend. I run my hands up the
insides of his thighs as they clamp against me, and then I lean forward and
press my mouth to the fabric straining against his swollen cock.
There is only a moment of hesitation on my part. The last time I did this
was inside Nostraza, when I’d been forced to do it to survive. When it was
the only thing I had to offer. When it wasn’t my choice.
But like with Atlas, it had been my choice then, and it’s my choice now. I
won’t give him my heart, but I will give him this. I’m not too blind to
understand that while I can never forgive his role in my torture, he’s also
softened some locked-up place deep inside me I’d thought would be
calcified into stone forever.
The look of reverence on his face tells me this is the right choice. I want
to undo him the way he keeps undoing me.
Easing his zipper down, I tug on the fabric of his underwear and inhale a
sharp breath as his thick, swollen cock pops out.
“Oh. My,” I say, noting how large he is and would that even fit?
“I told you it was better close up,” he says, and I look up to catch his
smirk. It’s definitely time to wipe that smug look off his face.
“Zerra,” Nadir moans as I wrap him in my hand and stroke him, while
the tendons in his neck strain. “I’m going to die if I can’t touch you.
Literally fucking die in this chair.” The desperation in his voice makes me
smile, speaking to a sadistic part of me that’s enjoying making him suffer
even if he’s about to get a reward.
Ignoring this plea, too, I stroke him with my hand gripped tight and then
lean over to suck on the swollen head, running my tongue along the slit and
tasting the salty hit of his arousal.
His hips jerk and I take more of him into my mouth, using my hand to
keep pumping. His groan shudders right through me, finding the wet
throbbing place between my thighs. This act has never felt like this before,
and I’m as turned on by it as he is.
I peer up at him, and he’s watching me with an unguarded look, his
cheeks flushed and his mouth parted.
“Zerra, you are so fucking beautiful,” he says. “You look so perfect with
my cock in your mouth.”
I shouldn’t enjoy those words as much as I do, but they send a fresh wave
of arousal straight to my clit. I continue my movements, taking more and
more of him in my mouth as his hips start moving. Eventually, I stop trying
to control it as I grip his legs and let him thrust in and out, his cock hitting
the back of my throat.
Nadir is groaning, the sound so raw it’s animalistic. “Fuck, that’s a good
girl. You feel so fucking good,” he says, his hands still obediently gripped
on the armrests, and the sounds of snapping wood and tearing fabric mixing
with his moans.
“I’m going to come,” he breathes and a moment later, I feel him thicken
before a hot wet spurt fills my mouth. I do my best to swallow it all until it
seems he’s wrung out. I wipe my chin and look up at him. The look in his
eyes is a combination of hazed lust, smug satisfaction, and, if I’m not
imagining things, a hint of bewilderment. I don’t think much befuddles the
Aurora Prince, but I hope I just turned his entire world upside down.
The leather of the armrest creaks and we both eye the deep tears in the
fabric, stuffing spilling out and the wood splintered to nothing but
toothpicks. He pins me with a dark look. “Take off your clothes. It’s your
turn.”
The guttural snarl in his voice makes my core clench. I’m aching
desperately, and I want to run to the bathroom to relieve myself, or better
yet, let him do it. The way he made me come on that terrace the other night
makes my knees go weak whenever I think about it. Which has been more
times than I care to admit.
But I resist the urge to cave into his demands. I will not give him back
the upper hand. This was my move, and I’m keeping the ball in my court.
Smoothly, I get to my feet, looking down at him.
“I have to go meet your sister. We’re going shopping. She’s going to
show me the Violet District.”
Nadir is up in an instant. He strides over to where I pick up my robe,
tucking himself in his pants. “Like hell you are.” He reaches for me and
then closes his fist, vibrating with frustration. “Inmate.”
“Oh, I’m Inmate again? I was a good girl a minute ago.” He snarls and a
thrill washes through me. Zerra, it feels good to rile him up like this. “Now
we’re even.” I shove my arms into my robe and tie it up.
“Even? Is that what this is about?” Nadir steps closer, and I feel the
towering weight of his presence. He doesn’t touch me, but he’s so close
there is nothing but tension and a thick fog of lust between us. “We are not
even. We’re not even until I make you come at least five times to my one.
Spread your thighs, and I’ll make you come so hard and so often you won’t
remember your name.”
My heart skips in my chest. Why does he have to say things like that?
And why do I like it?
“One to one, Prince,” I say, trying to sound like I mean it. “And it’s only
you who has trouble remembering my name.”
I pat him on the cheek with a patronizing smile as his pupils blow into
black pools of nothing.
“Lor,” he calls as I scoot past him and head for my trunk to pick out some
clothes.
“Oh, so you do remember it,” I say idly as I select a pair of leather pants
and a thin black long-sleeved shirt. I hope he doesn’t notice the shiver that
traveled over my skin when he growled my name.
“Get back here, so help me Zerra, I will…”
I spin and stick him with a look. “You’ll what? You promised not to
touch me that way unless I asked.”
His hands fist at his sides, and he looks like he wants to punch a hole in
the wall. Or through something much thicker and harder. I gather my
clothing and pad across the room, doing my best not to break into a run as I
feel his eyes burning holes into my back. When I get to the bathroom, I rush
inside and slam the door with my heart thundering in my ears.
Chapter Twenty-nine

Nadir

A fter Lor slams the door, I stare at it, my teeth grinding so hard they’re
about to turn to dust. My blood is boiling, and I can’t get enough air,
still reeling from how hard I just came. I’ve ruined that chair, but I’d buy
every single one in the fucking kingdom to experience that again.
As I hear her moving around on the other side of the door, all I can see is
the way she looked when she dropped her robe. Every curve and line and all
that soft skin, and fuck, I’m never ever getting that out of my head for as
long as I live.
Pacing the floor, I wait, wondering what she’ll do when she emerges. I’m
like a dragon protecting its horde. She’s mine now, whether or not she
knows it yet. I can’t believe she sucked my cock and then walked away.
What game is she playing? Did that not affect her? Was that just a
transaction? Tit for tat?
If she thinks this is the end of it, she’s never been more wrong about
anything in her life.
The door clicks, and she opens it, inhaling a sharp breath as she catches
sight of me. My shirt still hangs open, and I’m sure my eyes must be alive
with color right now. They’re always their brightest when my emotions are
high. My father knows how to control them, but I’ve never been able to
manage it with the same proficiency.
She quickly looks away, refusing to meet my gaze, and moves across the
room, picking up a pair of boots. She’s almost as stunning in clothes as she
is out of them. Black leather pants and a form-fitted top offer a tantalizing
hint of what’s underneath. This is almost better. Now that I know what’s
there, she’s like a present waiting to be unwrapped. By me. And only me.
Still not looking my way, she sits on the trunk at the foot of my bed, and I
watch her, trying to gauge her thoughts. Her hands are shaking, but is it
because she’s been left in a state of abandoned arousal, or is it because I’m
making her nervous?
When her boots are on, she flips her hair over her shoulder and does a
quick check in the mirror before striding towards the door.
She’s going to leave without saying anything, so I head her off, blocking
the way. She comes to a halt and looks up, somehow managing to look
down her nose despite the fact she’s nearly a foot shorter.
“Move,” she demands.
“No.”
Her jaw clenches, and there’s a turmoil of conflict in her deep brown
eyes.
“Move,” she says again, this time with more force. “I’m late to meet your
sister.”
“She’ll get over it. Stay here with me.”
She shakes her head. “No, I need to leave.”
What does she mean by that? She isn’t saying she doesn’t want to stay,
just that she needs to leave.
She glares at me, fierce defiance in her expression. This is when she’s her
most radiant. When I’d gladly fall to my knees and destroy entire continents
if she asked. Even if she didn’t.
“We aren’t done here,” I say.
“We are for now. Get out of my way. Are you going to make me a
prisoner again, too?”
Her words are pointed, and they have the intended effect, landing with a
sharp jab and exploding in the middle of my chest. When she told me the
story about her magic and what my father had done, it had taken every
ounce of my willpower not to storm through the Keep and rip off his head.
“Don’t compare me to him,” I snarl, my fists balling at my sides.
“Then let me leave.”
I have no choice. Of course, I won’t keep her here against her will.
Finally, I step aside, and she doesn’t look at me as she reaches for the
door handle. I force myself not to react. Not to reach out and pull her
against me like I desperately want. If she’s going to be mine, then I need to
take this slowly. However strong she seems, the life she’s lived means
earning her trust won’t be simple.
“We aren’t done here,” I say again. I think I catch the merest twitch of
her shoulders, but otherwise she doesn’t react as she steps out and slams the
door behind her.
Running a hand through my hair, I drop on the trunk at the foot of my
bed and then groan as I remember the way she looked on her knees. Zerra,
I’ve never felt like this. Like I’m going to come out of my skin if I don’t get
more of her soon. She’s baiting me. Holding me at a distance. And it’s
driving me insane.
I drop my face in my hands, thinking again about my father and his
actions. I knew she’d lived through hell inside Nostraza, but I’ve been
trying to convince myself I wasn’t responsible.
But I can’t keep pretending anymore. I let her rot there, just as my father
had. And I’d stood by while she’d been tortured by that monster. I could
have done something. I’ve always known what Nostraza was, but I turned a
blind eye, too focused on my own ambitions and oblivious to my blind
spots. The guilt is eating me alive.
I’m already moving towards the door before I truly understand what I’m
doing. Buttoning up my clothing as I walk, I storm through the Keep, my
footsteps forceful enough to practically vibrate the floors. A red haze of
anger blinds me to my surroundings, my chest tight and my throat tighter.
“Nadir!” comes a soft feminine voice that brings me up short.
Vivianna saunters towards me, all tits and skin, wearing a clinging teal
dress that would normally have my cock stirring. Today, it just leaves me
cold.
“I’ve barely seen you this week!” she says, her bottom lip thrusting out.
“Where have you been?”
“Busy,” I say, about to continue walking, but she steps in front of me.
“What? With that human?“ Her nose wrinkles, and that makes red bleed
into my vision. “I’m lonely. Come to my room. I can satisfy you so much
better than she can.”
She drags a single finger down my chest. The same spot where Lor just
kissed me and then licked me, and my entire body shivers at the memory. I
do need a good fuck. I’m so wound up, I need to release this tension, and
while I wouldn’t normally hesitate at Vivianna’s invitation, the idea makes
my stomach churn.
“No, thank you,” I say, again attempting to keep walking, but she presses
her hand flat to my chest and then grabs me between my legs.
“Nadir,” she whines. “You can’t leave me empty. Don’t deny me. You’re
already hard.” She strokes my cock through my pants, and my wire-tight
tension snaps. I grab her wrist and press it against her chest.
“Don’t touch me. I said no,” I snarl, and at that, she finally blinks.
Message received. “And that isn’t because of you.”
I drop her wrist and she steps back, her blood-red mouth formed into a
perfect ‘O’. I’ve never turned her down before, and as I toss her one last
look, something tells me I’ll never touch her again.
Once more, I’m on the move as I approach my father’s study. The guards
stationed outside try to step in front of me, but I’m not in the mood. I shoot
out a hand, colored ribbons of light dispersing into the air. They wrap
around the guards’ throats, silencing them before they collapse to the floor.
They’ll recover eventually. I think. Honestly, I don’t care. Add it to the list
of my sins.
After that, no one else bothers me as I storm to my father’s study and
slam open the door. The king sits at his desk with a blonde High Fae in his
lap, their noses touching. Both their heads swing my way as I burst into the
room.
When I find yet another thing to piss me off, my furious gaze falls on the
female, who visibly pales. I shouldn’t make this her fault, but still I hate her
for being here when my mother sits on the other side of the Keep withering
away to nothing.
“Yes?” my father asks, his tone imperious, as if my finding him here with
someone who isn’t his bonded is of no consequence. I know Fae aren’t
known for being loyal lovers, but after everything he’s done to her, every
transgression is too much. My fists clench as I resist the urge to leap over
the desk and wring this asshole’s neck.
It never ends. Everything Rion does is carefully designed to suit his
pleasure and desires. I can hear Lor’s screams ringing in my head,
imagining her tears, but always with that proud look on her face. He’d tried
to break her and failed. Anyone could see that.
My mouth opens as I’m about to loose a tirade on this bastard who’s hurt
almost everyone I love every day of his miserable life. But then I stop,
remembering what’s at stake for Lor. How she needs to remain anonymous
for now. I’m going to help, and it’s not just for my own ends, but because I
want this for her. When did I start to care about this woman who should
mean nothing to me?
The moment I laid eyes on her, that’s when. Fuck.
“Get out,” I snarl at the Fae on my father’s lap, and she looks to my
father for confirmation. He nods, and she stands, smoothing down her skirts
and tipping a curtsy at us before she scurries out of the room.
After she leaves, I whirl back on my father. “You know, your queen still
hasn’t said a word in years.”
Rion flicks his eyes skywards, leaning back in his chair. “This old song,
Nadir?”
My teeth grind again as a dull ache throbs in my temple.
“What do you want?” my father asks, and I roll my neck, trying to calm
myself. I can’t punish him for what he did to Lor. At least, not yet.
“What are you searching for in the Heart settlements?” I ask instead.
The king’s eyebrows rise. “Spying on me, are you?”
Ignoring the question, I plant my fists on his desk. “Why are you
rounding up the women?”
The king might think he’s untouchable, but I’m here to remind him I can
play these games, too.
He flattens his mouth. “That is none of your concern.”
“Why are you testing them for magic?”
My father stands, pressing his hands to the desk, his eyes going black. “If
I catch wind of that little weasel Etienne anywhere near my soldiers—“
“Don’t finish that thought,” I growl. “Do not threaten any of my friends.”
Rion narrows his eyes before he rounds the desk to stand in front of me.
He’s broader than I am, but a few inches shorter. He tugs the hem of his
jacket, the only tell that he’s been thrown off by this conversation.
“Friends,” he scoffs. “Friends are only a weakness. Surely you know that
by now.”
“Spoken like someone who’s never had a genuine one in his life.”
He ignores my comment and strides over to the window, looking out with
his hands laced behind his back. “What I’m searching for is none of your
concern at this time. When I have need of you, I’ll be sure to let you know.”
It’s an obvious dismissal, and I narrow my gaze. Zerra, how I wish I
could read his mind. He’s obviously lying about searching for the Primary,
but why is he looking for her now? Why did he try so hard to get Lor’s
magic out of her? He can’t bond to her like Atlas planned. Is there some
other way he might use her power? I’m missing something vital about this
entire situation.
I watch him, his back straight, and his chin lifted, and I’m sure I can taste
the lie in all of his words.
As I hesitate for another moment, he looks over his shoulder again.
“Have you secured the necessary votes from Amber and Violet? I’m told
Jessamine is holding out on us. I’d like to have this bill passed before the
end of Frostfire.” He swivels to face me with his hands still behind his back
and his shoulders squared. He’s referring to the mining labor laws he wants
to alter.
Animosity hangs between us like a black cloud in the air. I want to tell
him there’s no “us.” I want to walk over there and rip out his heart. Does he
really think I’m going to support this and try to win others over to his
cause? He already knows my feelings about the low fae.
Will he resort to his usual threats to bring me in line?
An acerbic retort sits on the tip of my tongue, but I remind myself that
Lor needs me. Keeping my father distracted with this nonsense might help
give us enough time to find the Crown before he does. And discover what
his greater plans are. So, I tip my head, the effort so stilted it’s like I’m
made of rusted parts.
“I’m working on Jessamine,” I say, hoping I sound at least a little like
I’m telling the truth. Partially, I am. I will go and work on her, but only to
convince her how bad of an idea this would be for The Aurora.
“Good,” Rion says. “Don’t let me down, Nadir.”
He doesn’t add the word “again,” but it still rings as clear as a crystal
bell.
Chapter Thirty

Lor

“T ry it on,” Amya says, holding up a silver necklace set with


amethyst stones that twinkle in the light. The shop where we stand
is busy with dozens of customers picking out trinkets to wear for various
Frostfire activities. Amya tells me that while the parties continue in the
Keep, the citizens of The Aurora hold their own nightly celebrations in the
city, as well.
I take the necklace from her and secure it around my throat, letting it
drape over my gold locket. I won’t take it off under any circumstances.
“What is that you’re always wearing there?” Amya asks with her eyes on
the necklace I stole from Aphelion. I clasp it in my hand.
“It’s the last thing I have from my mother,” I say, and her eyes turn
shadowed.
“Oh. I’m sorry.”
I shake my head, then check myself in the mirror, admiring the ornate
necklace.
“Nadir loves violet,” Amya says casually, picking up a ring and admiring
it on her finger.
“And?” I give her a skeptical look.
“Nothing,” she says with a shrug. “Just thought you might like to know.”
I pin her with a glare, and she tosses me an innocent smile full of bright
white teeth.
“Your brother is…”
“I know.” Amya picks up my sentence, apparently understanding exactly
what I’m about to say. “But I promise he’s not all bad once you get to know
him. He just has a rough exterior.”
I think of all the days we’ve spent together. I don’t really know how I
was going to finish that sentence. He’s confusing? He leaves me feeling all
kinds of things I shouldn’t? Things I don’t want to feel? We’ve shared so
much in such a short time. So many truths and so many secrets.
My knees are still rubbery and my cheeks flushed from what I did in his
room this afternoon. I smile to myself, remembering the look on his face
when I left him standing there. Getting one up on him feels better than it
should. I wonder what he did after I left?
“Yah, I’m seeing that,” I say, and Amya gives me a knowing look that I
choose to ignore.
The Aurora Prince is still the reminder of everything I’ve lost. How can I
ever look at him and not see the past? The deaths of my parents? My
imprisonment over twelve long, miserable years? The ominous words of the
Torch ring in my head like a drum beating on a constant wind.
Heartbreak.
Ruin.
The Aurora Prince will not have my heart.
“Come on,” Amya says. “Let’s go find you a dress for tomorrow.” She
gestures to the shopkeeper. “She’ll take this one. And I’ll have those.”
Amya points to a pile of jewelry gathered on the counter.
The shopkeeper bows his head. “I’ll have them sent to the Keep, Your
Highness.”
“Amya, you don’t have to keep buying me things, and I already have
plenty of dresses.”
Amya rolls her eyes. “Please. There’s no such thing as enough dresses.”
I can’t help the grin that surfaces. I have to admit, I do love all the lace
and silk that Amya chooses. After wearing only drab grey tunics for most of
my life, these beautiful clothes make me feel like an entirely different
person. In Aphelion, I could never settle into the golden dresses. They
always felt wrong, like they were made for someone else. But here, the
clothes fit me with more ease.
We enter a quiet dress shop with only a handful of customers. Seated on
plush chairs, they sip on glasses of champagne as the staff cart out an array
of dresses for them to examine.
When I see the price tag on the one nearest to me, I understand why it’s
not very busy in here.
“Amya,” I say, feeling strange about taking her money. “I don’t know
about this.” I’m not here as her guest or her friend. I’m here to destroy her
father and upset the very fabric of Ouranos.
“It’s fine! Cora!” Amya apparently doesn’t see it that way, because she
takes my hand and drags me through the store to where the shopkeeper, a
High Fae with sparkling silver hair, waits for us with a patient smile. I
suppose the princess of The Aurora gets top-notch service wherever she
goes.
“Your Highness,” Cora says with a deferential tip of her head. “We’ve set
aside some things we think you’ll like. And your companion?”
Amya pulls me forward. “Help Lor find something perfect for
tomorrow’s Frostfire party.” She then bounds into a changing room and lets
out an exclamation of joy from the other side of the curtain. “This is
gorgeous!”
Cora smiles and scans me from head to toe.
“You are the prince’s guest?” She tilts her head and I blink, surprised that
she knows, but there’s no judgement in her expression, only professional
curiosity. I nod and she points to a corner of the store.
“The black dresses are over here, then.”
“Do I have to wear black?” I ask, and she hesitates, her eyes flicking to
the closed curtain, where I can hear Amya changing.
“Generally, the prince’s companions do.”
I narrow my eyes at her. “How many “companions” have you dressed?”
Cora’s cheeks color, and she opens and then closes her mouth. “A few,
my lady.”
I don’t know why that hits me so hard. Of course, Nadir has been with
other women and brought them to the Keep. Still, the thought sits like a
stone in my stomach. I glance at the shopkeeper, but this isn’t her fault.
“Okay, show me.”
Her shoulders sag in relief before she leads me to a display of glittering
black dresses highlighted with flashes of aurora colors. I finger the soft
materials, wondering which one I should try.
“I will say, though, my lady,” Cora says softly, standing behind me. “You
are the first to arrive with the princess. And all those clothes I sent up were
for you?” I nod. “He’s never done that before.”
She gives me a small smile with her hands clasped in front of her. Those
words loosen something else inside me I can’t quite parse out. Does that
matter? Do I care?
It’s then my eyes alight on the most stunning dress I’ve ever seen. The
material is bright red, the neckline low, with a bodice that laces up the back.
I circle the mannequin, admiring the fall of the long red skirt, and I think of
the stone encased in the locket around my neck.
Red.
The color of home.
Of the legacy that was taken.
Of the rivers of blood that will run from the Aurora King when I finally
get my revenge.
“This one,” I say. “I want this one.”
Cora nods her head, though I can tell she’s wary about my choice. She
takes it off the mannequin and then leads me to a dressing room where I slip
into the garment.
It fits me perfectly, skimming over my hips and falling to the ground like
scattered rose petals.
“Let’s see,” Amya calls from the other side. I tug back the curtain and
step out, and Amya’s jaw drops.
The royal family wears black. Nadir’s companions wear black.
But I am not his conquest. I am not his to claim.
I’m not part of their royal line.
I have my own family.
And I am my own fucking castle.
Our gazes meet, and I can see Amya understands what this means to me.
“It’s perfect,” she says. “We’ll take it.”
A short while later, we head through the Violet District in search of
something to eat. I’m told The Aurora comprises eight districts, named for
the colors of the lights in the sky. Each one is famed for some form of craft
or resource. Violet is jewels and textiles.
Amya leads us towards a cozy-looking pub with long wooden tables
arranged out front. We drop into one, sitting across from one another.
“Well, that was a productive day,” Amya says, wiping her brow as
though we’ve put in a great amount of effort. I give her a small smile. It was
fun, I won’t deny it, but it’s hard to settle into the idea of fun when I’ve
never had this luxury before, nor when there’s so much at stake.
A moment later, Amya leaps up. “They’re here!”
I turn around, and my heart squeezes. Tristan and Willow are walking
down the street, flanked by Mael and Nadir. I jump up and run over,
wrapping them both in a hug.
We head for the table. “Why are you here?”
“I thought maybe you could use a little pick-me-up,” Amya says to all of
us. “It’s not safe for them at the Keep, but I thought we could sneak them
into the city for dinner.”
Tears bite the backs of my eyes as I wrap Tristan in a big hug, the leaded
air in my chest already more buoyant.
“Thank you,” I say to Amya, suddenly realizing just how much I’ve been
missing them both. Willow slides in next to Amya, and Tristan sits next to
me.
“Where’s Hylene?” Nadir asks Amya.
“She’s waiting for a message from Etienne,” Amya says, and some secret
exchange flickers between brother and sister.
“Who’s Etienne?” I ask, but Amya shakes her head.
“Just a friend.” She takes a sip of her drink, and I’m sure she’s keeping
something from me.
“How are things going?” Willow asks me, and I look around, conscious
of anyone hearing us. Amya waves a hand, dispensing some invisible form
of protective magic.
“No one can hear you now,” she says. “Talk freely.”
“No luck,” I say. “We haven’t found a trace of the Crown.” I swallow as
everyone leans in closer. “I held the Aurora Torch. It spoke to me.”
Amya’s eyes go wide, and she looks at her brother. “You did what?”
“We thought since the Mirror spoke to me that maybe the Torch would,
too.”
“What did it say?” Amya asks.
“It told me the Crown wasn’t near enough for it to feel it.”
“What does that mean?” Tristan asks.
“I don’t know. We’ve got a few more places to look in the Keep and
then…”
“What?” Willow asks, her eyebrows drawing together.
“The prince said we’d have to figure out where to search next.” I let out a
deep breath. That Crown could be anywhere. Ouranos is huge and I know
so little about anything.
“We’ve been searching through past accounts and records of the Sercen
Wars,” Willow says. “There are mentions of it here and there, but it’s hard
to know if they’re just red herrings. Amya says there have been many
supposed sightings over the years, but it’s never resurfaced.”
My shoulders fall, and she takes my hand across the table. “We’ll keep
looking. Don’t worry. We’re going to find it.”
Tristan wraps an arm around my shoulders and draws me closer, planting
a kiss on my head. “You’re not doing this alone, Lor. We’re going to be
with you every step of the way.”
“She won’t be alone.” We all look up to find Nadir standing over us, his
arms folded. My cheeks flush when I notice he’s staring at me. “I’ll keep
searching with her.”
Tristan visibly bristles at that. “She needs her family. People she can
trust.”
“She can trust me.” He says it with such certainty my stomach flips.
“Both of you stop it,” I say.
Tristan ignores me. “I don’t like it. I don’t like you being away from us,
and I don’t like you being alone with him.”
“Tristan, enough. He’s only been helping me.”
Nadir smirks at my brother and then moves around the table to plant
himself on my other side.
“Hey,” I say, suddenly feeling shy in his presence, relieved he doesn’t
seem angry about the way I left him. This afternoon brought out something
in me I hadn’t known was there, but now that we’re no longer alone, a small
flicker of uncertainty passes over me.
“Hey,” he says. He’s straddling the bench, facing me so that I’m in
between his legs. “Did you have a fun afternoon?”
He arches a dark brow, and I can practically read the words on his face.
Did I have fun abandoning him when he’d offered me some very specific
entertainment?
“I did,” I say, not taking the bait and deciding to lob some dynamite of
my own. “I met Cora, the shopkeeper who told me about the parade of the
prince’s companions who’ve bought dresses from her.”
Nadir leans closer as the rest of the table continues chatting away,
ignoring the two of us. “Should I pretend you’re the first woman I’ve been
with?” he says quietly into my ear.
“No, I…”
“I’m not the first man you’ve been with.”
“Of course you aren’t.”
His eyes darken at that. “I know I can’t be angry that you’ve fucked
others before me, but it doesn’t make me any less inclined to rip out their
throats.”
I snort. “Technically, I haven’t fucked you,” I say, lightly.
“Yet,” he says, and I give him a sidelong glance. “What I did with my
tongue was fucking, Inmate. And what you did this afternoon…”
He trails off, and I look over my shoulder. Thankfully, everyone else is
too engrossed in their own conversations to pay us any attention.
He leans in closer, his mouth right against my ear again. “Fuck, that was
the hottest blow job I’ve ever gotten. I’m going to be thinking about that for
a very, very long time, Heart Queen.”
A shiver consumes me, and a smile creeps to my face at the gravity in his
tone. I love how unguarded he seems ever since he told me about his
attraction. Like he’s holding nothing back.
“You’re welcome,” I say, and his answering laughter is dark and low.
“I told you the Fae are territorial, and I have no interest in anyone else.
As long as there’s the slightest chance you’ll let me touch you again, I have
eyes only for you.”
“And if there isn’t a chance? What if I say that was it and I’m done?”
His shoulders lift, the light in his eyes sparking.
No one has ever said “no” to him, that much is obvious.
“Then I’m going to work very, very hard to convince you otherwise.”
I let out a shaky breath.
Fuck, this prince really is going to be the death of me.

The sky darkens as we finish our meal and the Borealis starts to streak
across the sky. Willow and Amya have moved to a nearby table and are
deep in conversation. Clearly, they’ve been getting to know one another
while I’ve been at the Keep. I hope Willow is being careful and not falling
for any of Amya’s lies. I still can’t fully trust her.
But then who am I to talk? Mael and Nadir are conversing at the far end
of the table, and I take a moment to study Nadir, appreciating the curves of
his broad shoulders and the way his biceps strain against the fabric of his
shirt. Why did Zerra make this Fae, the son of my sworn enemy, so
beautiful?
I mean, they’re all beautiful in the way of High Fae, but around Nadir, I
can never catch my breath. My magic slips under my skin, reminding me of
what it wants. It’s only when he’s touching me that it finally curls into
satisfaction.
“He’s been treating you properly?” Tristan asks, catching the direction of
my stare and leaning down to speak to me in a quiet voice. “Because if he
does anything to hurt you, I’ll tear off his limbs and beat him senseless.
That prince is way too in love with himself for his own good.”
I smile at Tristan, touching his cheek.
“What was that for?”
“I love you, big brother. You’ve been watching over me our whole lives,
but we’re out of Nostraza. I don’t need you to fight my battles for me
anymore.”
Tristan snorts and pops a spiced peanut into his mouth, crunching down
on it. “I haven’t fought your battles for you since you learned how to throw
a punch and nail a guy in the balls so hard he cries.”
“Yah, but who taught me to do that?”
Tristan looks at me, concern in his expression. “I’m always going to look
out for you, Lor. I’m your brother. That’s my job. No matter how powerful
you become. Even after we find that Crown and you’re sitting on that
throne where you belong, I’m still going to look out for you.”
I lean against him, resting my head on his shoulder.
“Do you think that’s where this all ends? Do you think that after
everything, the three of us will get the chance to just be happy?”
He pops another peanut in his mouth and tips his cheek so it’s resting on
my head.
“I don’t know, but I’m going to do everything I can to make it happen.”
I peer back up at him. “You know what, Tris? There are days when I
want to scream and rage about how unfair this all was. How none of it
should have happened this way. We should have grown up safe and content
with our parents, but then I realize how much worse it could have been if
the two of you hadn’t been by my side, and that makes me feel like the
luckiest person in the world.”
Tristan frowns, his eyebrows drawing together.
“What? Why are you looking at me like that?”
“You’ve changed so much. I’m just so fucking proud of you.”
My cheeks heat at his words. Maybe I have changed. Maybe this is who I
was all along, but I’d never gotten the chance to be myself. Everything I am
was buried under a thick cloak of pain.
He huffs out another laugh. “To think the last time I saw you, you nearly
killed a woman for taking your soap.”
I shake my head. “I was a little…wild. I still am. It’s just easier to control
myself when I’m not starving and cold all the time.”
He gives me a sad and serious look. “I understand what you mean. These
last few weeks have been…”
“I know.” I lay a hand on his arm. “I know.”
“But that slightly unhinged spirit makes you kind of loveable,” he smirks
and knocks his shoulder against mine. “You’re going to make an amazing
queen.”
“I still have a long way to go, but thank you. I wouldn’t be any part of
who I am without you in my life.”
Tristan wraps an arm around my shoulder and pulls me into him, holding
me close. We sit in silence for a moment, listening to the sounds of the city
and people bustling around us. It feels so peculiar to exist in something as
normal as a busy evening.
“What’s with those two?” I ask, gesturing with my chin to Willow and
Amya.
Tristan blows out a sigh. “Yah, that. Apparently they’re ‘friends’ now.”
“How come you’re not glaring at Amya like you do at the prince?”
Tristan raises an eyebrow. “You really want me to answer that?”
“I know she might seem like the nice one, but—“
“But what?”
“Nothing,” I say. “I think she really might be the nice one.”
Tristan smirks and takes a long sip from his drink.
“Keep an eye on her, okay?” I say to him and he squeezes me tighter.
“You’re supposed to be the baby sister.”
“We both know the order of our birth has never had anything to do with
the roles we play, Tris.”
“Yah,” he says, softly.
Chapter Thirty-one

A few hours later, when the sun has set and the city is bursting with the
sounds of the night, Tristan and Willow bid their goodbyes. We hug
each other tight, hoping we’ll see each other soon.
We only have the catacombs left to search, and Frostfire is nearly at an
end. After that, I’m not sure where my path takes me. I just know it will be
with them by my side. Thinking about those dark bowels of the castle
makes heat prick at the back of my neck. Nadir said he’d give me a few
days, but sooner or later, I’m going to have to face those dark corridors.
After Mael and Amya escort my family back to the manor, only Nadir
and I remain behind. He holds out an elbow, and I thread my arm through
his before we stroll through the streets.
“It’s hard to believe this all exists,” I say. “That there are happy, healthy
people living here so close to the prison.”
I look at Nadir, who’s watching me with wariness. “Don’t worry, I’m not
going to lecture you about Nostraza tonight. It’s just a wonder to behold this
all. I’ve never really been inside a proper city. We lived so deep in the
woods that we rarely saw many people. In Aphelion, I never left the palace
except for the Trials. I’ve read books and stories about places like this, but
they never fully conveyed the energy of a city teeming with life.”
Nadir looks around us, a thoughtful expression on his face. “When you’re
used to something, it’s hard to appreciate it for its beauty,” he says. “I forget
how alive this place feels. This area used to be what you would compare to
The Umbra.”
“Really?” I look around at the stone buildings, each one tidy and neat.
They rise around us, their square windows lined with curtains and flower
boxes. The streets are paved with wide grey stones, and there is no doubt
these people are cared for. Emotion sticks in my chest. “I always thought
The Aurora must be such a miserable place. That there couldn’t possibly be
any happiness here.”
Nadir tugs his arm, so it pulls me closer. I’m not sure if the move is
intentional or not, but I wrap my hand around his biceps to steady myself.
“I can understand why you might have thought that.” He stops and shakes
his head. “But it’s tenuous. Always on the brink of collapsing because of
my father.”
He breaks off, his mouth pressing into a thin line.
“What?” I ask, sensing he has something else to share with me.
“After what you told me about my father, I went to find him this
afternoon to rip out his throat.”
I tighten my grip on his arm. “Why?”
“Because I was so fucking furious with him. I wanted to hurt him for
hurting you.”
We’ve stopped walking, and the surge of the crowd moves around us,
everything but the two of us melting away.
“Please tell me you didn’t,” I say, confused by his reaction.
“I stopped myself. I knew that wouldn’t do you any favors.”
“Good,” I reply, pulling him by the arm. “The thought was nice, I guess.
Even if it’s a little murderous.”
He lets out a low, dark laugh. “Don’t pretend you don’t like it, Inmate.”
I don’t answer that, but maybe I do. My life has been filled with so much
violence, and I’m tired of it, but I also know it’s the only way through.
We keep walking in silence until we happen upon a large square where
music is playing and couples are swaying to the sounds. Amongst the noise,
children scream in delight and laughter fills the air. Overhead, the lights are
flowing across the sky in rippling ribbons of color.
“It’s so beautiful,” I say.
“It is,” Nadir agrees, but when I look at him, he’s staring intently at me. I
look away, overwhelmed by the tangle of feelings in my chest.
“Do you want to dance?” he asks, tipping his head in the direction of the
swirling couples. There are a few faces turning our way as they recognize
their prince standing in their midst.
I shake my head. “I don’t know how.”
“You danced with me in Aphelion.”
“Terribly,” I say with a laugh, which elicits a smile.
“I didn’t notice.”
The meaning in his voice is clear, and I swallow a knot of nerves.
“Come on.” He takes my hand. “You don’t need to do anything but let
me lead.”
He pulls me through the crowd, coming to a stop in the middle where he
draws me closer, an arm wrapping around my waist.
“Let you lead?” I joke as he laces his fingers through mine. “I don’t
know about that.”
“Just for the dance. I promise.” I let him do as he says, guiding me
through a series of simple steps as we twirl with the music. The lights streak
overhead, painting everyone with illuminated rainbows. When I look at
Nadir, colors swirl in his irises, pink and blue and violet. His expression is
soft, the lines of his face different from what I’m used to.
“What’s on your mind?” he asks.
“I’m not sure how to act around you.”
His face tips into that cocky smile as he pulls me closer so our bodies are
flush. “Why not?”
I roll my eyes. “Don’t pretend you don’t know what I’m talking about.
What is this? You and me?”
His hand slides up the back of my skull before he grabs on to my hair and
gently bends my head up. Our lips are so close, I can practically taste his
breath on my tongue. “I told you already, we’re just enjoying each other’s
company. I want you and I know you want me.”
He presses me against him, cutting off a scoff of feigned laughter.
“Admit it.”
“I admit nothing,” I say, and he smirks.
“Fine. Keep lying to yourself. I promised I wouldn’t do anything you
don’t want. You’re the one in charge of how fast this goes.”
Zerra, I know I shouldn’t trust him. I know I shouldn’t believe him. I
can’t let myself get swept up in the smooth words of a royal Fae ever again,
but I fear I’ve already let this go too far. His expression is so earnest, and
his words feel like a truth ripped from his soul. They make me feel
confident and safe, but I can’t keep ignoring the warning voice in my head.
“So, do we keep sharing the bed?” I ask.
“Is that what you’re worried about?”
“I’m not worried. I’ve just never done this sort of thing before.”
“Done what?”
“I don’t know. Had a relationship like this. When I was in Nostraza, there
was never anything beyond tomorrow. It was just…it was different.”
His grip tightens on me. “Good. I want this to be different.”
He spins me around, and I laugh as he lifts me off my feet, twirling me in
a circle. I’m having fun. I don’t remember a day when I genuinely had fun
in so many years. Right now, everything that’s at stake seems far away and
distant and, for the first time in a long time, I allow myself to breathe.
Tears build in my eyes, and I blink them back. This is what I’m fighting
for. This is the hope I held on to every day I lived inside Nostraza.
Everything I fought for during the Trials. For me and for Tristan and
Willow, who had all of this taken away.
I think of the people living in the Heart settlements waiting for their
queen. They also lost everything the day my grandmother destroyed their
home.
Tomorrow, I’ll face down those dark hallways of the Keep, pushing away
the memories of what the king did. Finding the Crown is the most important
thing. It’s the only way I can save us all.
“Where are you?” comes a soft voice, and I blink, looking up at Nadir,
who’s still swaying us to the beat of the music. “You aren’t that perplexed
about the bed?”
I huff out a laugh and shake my head. “No. I was just thinking that I’m
ready to search the catacombs. Thank you for giving me time. You must
think I’m being dramatic.”
He tips his chin towards me. “Absolutely not. I think you’re very brave.”
My cheeks warm, and I look away, the intensity of his gaze starting to
undo me. He leans in close, his cheek resting against my forehead as he
twirls me again. “As for the bed, we can keep sharing it. There’s plenty of
room, and you have nothing to fear from me.”
There’s more he’s not saying buried in those words. A brilliant flash of
light streaks overhead, and the music swells to a joyful beat.
I nod slowly, looking into his eyes, and whisper, “I know.”
Chapter Thirty-two

Serce

“G uess who?” Serce asked, covering Wolf’s eyes from behind. He


sat cross-legged on the floor, and his arms snaked behind,
wrapping her against him.
“Hmm? The love of my life? My mate? The most beautiful and fearless
queen to walk this plane?”
Serce laughed and then looped her arms around his neck, kissing him
behind the ear. “Were you always this smooth with the women?”
He looked over his shoulder and winked. “It never mattered before, and
now it never will again.”
“Well, I should hope not,” she joked before he put a hand behind her
head and pulled her in for a deep kiss. After they broke apart, she asked,
“What are you doing?”
Before him sat what looked like a chessboard covered in an array of
carved figures. He had another block of wood in his hand that he was
whittling with a small knife. The figures were beautifully intricate, made to
look like The Woodlands sprites and elves that inhabited the realm’s forests.
He shrugged his wide shoulders. “Just making a little something in case
Zerra sees fit to grant us an heir. I want to teach them how to play. My
father taught me. It’s a bit of a family tradition.”
Serce said nothing as he dug the tip of his knife into the soft wood,
prying out a sliver. He cast a look over his shoulder. “I hope that’s okay for
me to say.”
She smiled. “Of course it is. We talked about it, and I’m open to having a
family. You know that. We need an heir, regardless.”
His forehead furrowed. “Aye, but you’re not entirely comfortable with
the idea yet. You can’t pretend with me.”
She let out a shaky breath. “I’ll get there. The idea is still new. I really
hadn’t given it much thought until I met you. I love you, Wolf, and if this
makes you happy, then I want to give that to you.”
“Your happiness matters, too,” he said. “I don’t want you to feel
trapped.”
“I know,” she said softly as she buried her chin in the crook of his neck,
watching him work. “And that’s why I don’t feel trapped. Because you’re
giving me the choice. Besides, you know no one could make me do
something I didn’t really want.”
He chuckled, the sound as warm as an open flame.
“Yes, I do know that.”
At that moment, there came a firm knock at the door.
“Come in,” Serce called before one of her lady’s maids swung it open.
“Your Highness,” she said, dropping into a quick curtsy. “The High
Priestess has arrived.”
Serce let go of her hold on Wolf and pushed herself up, her hands pressed
to his shoulders.
“Excellent. Where is she?”
“In the salon, Your Highness.”
“Thank you, Stiora. We’ll be there in a moment.”
Stiora curtsied again and closed the door as Wolf dusted wood shavings
from his brown leather breeches before standing up. He picked up the
chessboard and placed it on the table, along with his knife. He pulled Serce
close, wrapping his arms around her waist. She stared into his bright green
eyes that sparkled with mischief.
“You ready?”
“As I’ll ever be,” she replied.
He grinned and took her hand as they made their way to the salon to meet
with Cloris Payne. As promised, she was waiting in the Oak Tree Room,
perched on the edge of an upholstered green chair with a tea service placed
on the table in front of her, her hands clasping and unclasping in her lap.
At their entrance, she stood and bowed. “Your Majesty,” she said,
addressing Wolf before she turned to Serce. “Your Highness.”
“Thank you for coming,” Serce said. “We’ve been eagerly awaiting your
arrival.”
The priestess dipped her head, her silver hair spilling over her shoulders.
Half if it hung to the middle of her back, while the rest was braided and
then coiled into an elegant knot at the back of her head. She wore a simple
black dress that managed to look both humble and regal on her angular
frame.
The priestesses were High Fae who swore their lives to Zerra, acting as
her emissaries here on the corporeal plane. They were said to possess a
specific strain of magic, the details of which were conveniently known only
to them.
“When one receives a summons from the Woodlands King and the
Primary of Heart, one doesn’t linger.”
Serce offered a smile that didn’t reach her eyes. This was the second time
she’d met with Cloris, and something about the priestess made her uneasy.
“Please sit.”
“I’d prefer if we moved to the floor,” Cloris said. “In front of the fire. It’s
where I’m most comfortable.”
“Of course,” she replied, unfazed by the unusual request. She’d heard
that priestesses derived their power from fire.
Wolf grabbed several of the sofa cushions and arranged them in front of
the massive hearth. Cloris sank to her knees on one while Serce did the
same. Wolf opted for the floor, one knee propped up with his arm slung
over it. He wore his usual green tunic, the thin material straining against his
thick muscles.
“Thank you,” Cloris said. Her face belied her age. It was also said the
priestesses’ life spans moved differently than other High Fae, and it was
hard to tell if Cloris was twenty or two thousand, despite the fine lines
framing her eyes and the sweep of her long grey hair. There was an
agelessness about her that was hard to pinpoint.
“I’ve been doing some reading, as I promised,” she said, digging into the
bag slung over her shoulder. She pulled out a slim book with a faded cover.
“There are so many competing history books in Ouranos, it’s difficult to
parse which ones are real. I suppose, in a way, they all are. It’s a challenge
when we enjoy such long life spans. History isn’t exactly history when
those who lived through it are still amongst us.”
She settled down, collapsing on one hip and opening the book. “I’ve
come across only a few passing references to Primaries who’ve ascended
with one another’s Artefacts. You understand it’s been thousands of years
since anyone attempted it?”
She peered at Serce. There was no judgement in her expression, only the
curiosity of a professional interested in seeing what was possible. Serce
knew when she’d met Cloris, she’d be the perfect Fae to execute her plans.
The priestess was known for toeing the lines of magic and challenging
boundaries. Serce exchanged a look with Wolf, but his confidence had
never wavered. He believed in this as much as she did.
“Why?” Serce asked.
Cloris shook her head. “Primaries aren’t normally eager to share their
power with someone who matches their strength. The bonding has always
favored one side and was never meant to be a union of equals. Besides, the
process is difficult from what I’ve gleaned. The nearest I can determine is
that when two Primaries bond, their magic can become erratic unless both
are powerful enough to control it. We’ll need to implement some
safeguards. Adding to that, a Primary bond can only be achieved using a
willing vessel of the goddess’s magic, which of course is rare to come by.”
Serce considered that. She knew she was powerful—possibly the most
powerful Primary to ever exist. If anyone could control it, she could. And
she had no reservations about sharing her power with Wolf. She eyed the
priestess shrewdly with a nagging feeling that Cloris wasn’t being entirely
forthright about everything. Goddess’s magic, indeed.
“Have there been no other Primaries who were drawn to one another?”
Serce asked. “Or possibly mates, even?” She kept her question casual, not
wanting to reveal anything to Zerra’s disciple.
Cloris shrugged her narrow shoulders. “I’ve never heard of a case with
mates, though it seems unlikely there haven’t been Primaries who held a
more than friendly interest in one another. I suppose they might have
entered relationships without the bond, content to keep their magic
separate.”
Serce shook her head vehemently. Not only was there the question of
using the bond to increase her power, she had to bond with Wolf. It was
said that mates who didn’t bond would eventually succumb to permanent
death. They’d bypass the Evanescence and simply cease to exist. To lose a
love like theirs would fail to honor the sacred gift Zerra had bestowed upon
them. There was no question that it had to be done.
“No, that’s not good enough.”
“I understand, Your Highness.” The corner of Cloris’s lip turned up in a
way that suggested she already knew Serce and Wolf were mates and was
simply humoring them by pretending otherwise.
“What would have happened if I’d bonded to Atlas and Tyr had died?
Wouldn’t we have become two bonded Primaries then?” Serce asked,
wanting to understand all the possible loopholes and pitfalls of this magic.
Cloris waved a dismissive hand. “Oh, the younger Sun Prince is not the
next Primary. It wouldn’t have been an issue.”
Serce frowned at that. “He’s not? Then why did they want me to compete
in the Trials in the event something happened to his brother?”
“Well, they don’t know he isn’t,“ Cloris said with a sly glint. “They are
simply assuming. I understand why, given he is closest to the Sun King and
Tyr, but the Artefacts make their choices based on many factors.”
“But you do know?”
“I am a conduit of Zerra, Your Highness. I know many of her secrets.”
“Should you be telling us this?”
Cloris tipped her pointed chin. “We are allies, are we not?” She blinked
her wide eyes and Serce nodded, definitely on her guard. What game was
this priestess playing?
“Of course.”
“But it can be done? Between me and Serce?“ Wolf asked.
Cloris nodded, flipping through the book. “It does seem that way. But
you’ll need both Artefacts.” She looked at both Serce and Wolf with the
question in her eyes.
“I’ll get it,” Serce said. “That won’t be a problem.”
“And the issue of your mother descending?” There was a note of
condescension laced with that question Serce didn’t care for, but she tried
not to let her irritation show.
“Just leave that to me,” she replied.
Cloris nodded. “Good. Then I shall pray to Zerra for her guidance. May
she look favorably on this union.” She snapped the book shut and tipped her
chin towards Serce. “How far along are you?”
“Excuse me?”
She gestured to Serce’s midsection. “You’re pregnant, aren’t you?”
Serce felt the shift of Wolf perking up next to her, his hand coming to the
small of her back. She pressed her own hands to her stomach and looked at
him. There was so much hope and love in his eyes that her heart missed a
beat.
“Serce?”
She opened her mouth, nearly at a loss for words. “I guess I’ve been
feeling a little off lately. I thought I was just tired from all the stress.”
Wolf broke into a huge grin and pulled Serce towards him, wrapping her
into an enormous hug before he buried his face into her hair. “I love you,”
he whispered, his voice cracking. She wrapped her arms around him, too,
clinging to him, feeling the weight of this moment on her shoulders. A
mother. Could she do this?
He pulled away, brushing a lock of hair from her face. “Tell me you’re
okay with this, Serce. I want you to want this, too.”
She swallowed and touched his cheek, his rough stubble pricking her
fingers. He was so beautiful it made her heart squeeze every time she
looked at him. “I want it, Wolf. With you, I want it.”
He smiled again, pulling her close and clutching her tight. “You’ve made
me so fucking happy.”
As if finally remembering someone else was there, they both turned to
Cloris, who was watching with a patient smile.
“May I?” she asked, holding her hands towards Serce. She nodded and
Cloris gently placed them on her stomach, her eyes drifting shut. Serce held
still as the priestess’s eyelids fluttered.
Wolf moved in closer, a line of concern forming between his thick brows.
Serce gave him a look of reassurance, and then Cloris opened her eyes and
smiled. “I’d guess about three, maybe four, months.”
Serce blew out a long breath and ran her hands over her stomach. “Are
you sure?”
“Give or take a week,” Cloris answered.
If that was true, then she’d gotten pregnant while they’d still been in
Heart during the summit. Knowing this life had started in her home made
her feel like this was indeed her destiny. This was how it was all supposed
to happen. She’d never been more sure of her purpose.
Wolf’s eyes were flushed with love and a look of wonder.
“Serce,” he whispered. “Can it really be?”
A grin bloomed on her face. She was happy about this. Seeing him so
happy made her happy, too. “I think so.” He flung his arms around her, tears
staining his cheeks. They hugged for a long while, when once again, they
remembered they had an audience.
“Sorry,” he said to Cloris, who shook her head.
“Not at all. It’s a momentous occasion. You should be celebrating.”
“Does this change anything?” Serce asked. “Regarding our plans?”
Cloris shook her head, clasping her hands together. “I don’t think so.
Since it’s highly likely you’re carrying another Primary, I think this can
only work in your favor.”
Wolf clasped Serce’s hand and kissed the back of it, his eyes shining.
“So what do we do once we have both Artefacts?” Serce asked, returning
to business.
Cloris held up the book in her hand. “There is a ritual of sorts that’s
outlined in here. It’s not quite like the ascension, but it’s similar. I’ll need to
study the details a bit more. When do you think you can get the Crown?”
Serce bit her lip, thinking about their next course of action. She’d have to
be careful about how she approached this. No one could know what they
were planning. Mother had been poisoning the ears of the rulers of Ouranos
about her for months, and convincing Daedra to descend was growing more
difficult by the day.
Serce looked to Wolf. “We’ll have to go for a visit soon.”
He nodded sagely. “I’ll get everything ready.”
“Good.” She turned back to Cloris. “I can’t thank you enough for
everything. For this knowledge and this gift.” She pointed to her stomach,
running her hands along it.
“I had nothing to do with that,” she said with a coy smile. “As for the
knowledge, I do expect the compensation we discussed.”
“Of course,” she replied. “The Ark of the Coeur will be yours once this is
over. I swear it.”
“Wonderful.” Cloris clapped her hands together.
“Won’t you stay the night?” Serce asked. “Tomorrow is the new moon,
and a feast is being prepared. You must celebrate with us.”
Cloris smiled before tucking her book into her bag. “I should be getting
back home, but one night can’t hurt.”
“Perfect,” Serce replied with a smile. Wolf stood and helped her stand,
his arm wrapping around her waist. She called for one of the servants just
beyond the door.
“Yes, Your Highness?”
“Please escort the High Priestess to one of the guest rooms. And send
some refreshments up. I’m sure she’s famished.”
“Thank you, both of you,” Cloris said before bowing and then following
the servant out of the room. When she was out of earshot, Serce strode to
the door and addressed one of Wolf’s guards.
“See that Cloris doesn’t leave her room. She is hereby a prisoner of Heart
and The Woodlands.”
The guard dipped his head and scurried off to do her bidding. Wolf
wrapped her in his arms from behind as she shut the door and spun to face
him.
“She’ll come with us to Heart. We can perform the ritual there. It’ll be
easier than bringing the Crown all the way back here. Fewer moving parts.”
“I’ll get my army ready for travel,” Wolf said, his eyes flicking to the
door Cloris had just exited. “She won’t be happy about this.”
“It can’t be helped. No one can know of our plans, and she’s now a loose
end. Once we’re done with her, then she’ll need to be eliminated. I don’t
know what she wants with one of my family’s oldest heirlooms, but I have
no intention of giving it to her.”
Wolf nodded and brushed her bottom lip with his thumb. Their gazes
met, and they both looked down at her stomach before looking up again.
Wolf broke into a glorious smile.
“You’ve made me so happy, Serce. You’ll get your crown and then we’ll
claim all of Ouranos and start our family together. Soon, we’re going to
have everything we’ve ever wanted.”
Chapter Thirty-three

Lor

T he morning after our dinner in the Violet District, I make good on my


vow and allow Nadir to lead me back to the catacombs. As we
descend into the arched stone corridors, the aroma that sent me into a
tailspin last time drifts up, nearly knocking me over.
Swaying where I stand, I close my eyes and will my thrumming heartbeat
to settle. Nadir lingers close to me, quietly waiting as I collect myself.
When I feel ready, I peel my eyes open and peer into the gloom.
Grounded with the knowledge this is another step on a path to happiness
for me and my siblings, I’m trying to approach this grim task with courage.
The Aurora King can only keep hurting me if I let him. I’ll do this for
Tristan and Willow. For every citizen of Heart who lost their home, too.
“Are you okay?” Nadir asks, and I nod.
“Let’s get this over with.”
His jaw turns hard before he takes my hand, and we start walking. The
boundaries between us have been slowly crumbling, and this simple action
feels natural in a way I would never have expected when we set out with
this plan two short weeks ago. We move swiftly, trying to cover ground as
quickly as possible. I look straight ahead, blocking out the sight of anything
that might feel too familiar.
Holding my breath, I try my best to concentrate on whatever it is I’m
supposed to notice if the Crown is near. Frustratingly, there’s nothing. No
change. No discernible difference. The only thing I feel is the tug of my
magic and its only interest is Nadir. I’ve stopped fighting it as much as
before, and it responds by purring softly like a newborn kitten, especially
when he’s touching me.
“I think that’s enough,” he says eventually. “It’s clearly not here.” He
touches my cheek and gives me a soft smile. “Are you okay? I'm so proud
of you for doing this.”
“I'm okay,” I reply. A little shaky, but having him here with me made it
all a little less terrifying. “But what are we going to do now?”
He winks. "I've always got one more idea. Let’s go.”
When we ascend into the regular part of the castle, I finally release the
tense breath I’m holding as we hurry through the halls and back to Nadir’s
wing. A tray of food has been left out for us—nuts, cheese, slices of soft
bread, and crackers—along with a bottle of wine. I pour myself a glass and
take a long gulp.
“So what’s your idea?” I ask as Nadir sits down next to me.
“My father doesn’t really have friends, but I learned this morning that
Vale, the closest thing he has to one, just arrived at the Keep this morning.”
“Why does that matter?”
“Because it’s strange for him to have missed almost all of Frostfire. I
wonder if perhaps my father sent him out on an errand that could prove
useful for us to know about.”
“Do you think he would tell you?”
Nadir shrugs. “Vale loves to hear himself talk. Especially when he’s got a
few drinks in him. And for some reason, he’s always liked me.”
“Well, in that case, I’m not sure I can trust anything he says.”
Nadir’s face breaks into a wry smile before he drops his voice and fixes
me with a dark look. “You’re going to pay for that later, Inmate.”
“Only if I let you,” I counter, and he smirks as a knot ties in my stomach.
In spite of everything, his presence feels too easy. Too comfortable. The
way he held my hand the entire time today was the only thing keeping me
from falling apart. Why is he so far under my skin? It’s both thrilling and
terrifying.
“I’ll make sure of it,” he promises.
Trying to break the tension and dispel the constant ache in my chest, I
stand up abruptly. “Then I should go get ready.”
Nadir nods as I head for my closet and pull out a dress before I go into
the bathroom to change.
Several minutes later, I’m putting on a pair of earrings when there’s a soft
knock.
“Come in,” I say as the door swings open and Nadir walks in, tugging on
the cuff of his fitted black dress shirt. He’s wearing a black jacket that
molds to his broad chest and tapered waist in a way that makes my breath
catch.
“Dear Zerra,” I say, the words slipping out. His dark hair hangs loose
around his shoulders, and I can still feel those silky strands running through
my fingers. Finished with my jewelry, I clench my hands, willing them to
behave.
Nadir’s gaze sweeps me from head to toe, his eyes darkening.
“Gods,” he says, the word strangled from his throat. “You look good
enough to eat.”
As I apply my lipstick, Nadir comes to stand behind me. I straighten up
as we both watch each other in the reflection. My magic thrums under my
skin, always trying to reach for him.
“Why don’t we skip the party and stay here?” he says, his voice silky.
“And do what?” I bat my eyes at him in the mirror and he smirks.
“I can think of a few things.” His mouth is so close to my ear, his breath
snakes down the front of my dress, causing an eruption of goosebumps. A
warm knuckle travels the length of my bared back, slowly dragging along
my skin. Magic courses to that tiny point of contact, swirling around every
bone of my spine.
“What happened to the red dress I saw in the closet?” he asks.
“Aren’t I supposed to wear black?”
“Why would I care about that?”
“Doesn’t black tell everyone I belong to you?” I say with a roll of my
eyes.
“I don’t need a dress for anyone to see that.”
I huff out a laugh and shake my head.
“Amya bought it for me on a whim, but I didn’t want to draw too much
attention to myself with it.”
“Maybe you can model it for me later.”
“We have to go. We need to talk to Vale.”
“I know, but you have no idea how much I want to rip this dress off and
fuck you on this counter.”
My breath is shaky, and I hope he doesn’t notice the way my hands
tremble as I cap the lipstick and place it on the counter in question.
“I’ll show you the fun things I can do with my magic,” he adds with such
suggestion in his voice that my core pools with liquid heat.
Gathering myself, I meet his dark eyes in the mirror. “Play your cards
right, prince of The Aurora, and maybe you’ll get it all tonight.”
Nadir’s nostrils flare, and I sense him trying to collect himself, too. I turn
around, my breasts brushing against him. “Shall we go?”
He grabs my arm, pulling me back.
“Let me taste you again,” he says, his voice rough. “Before we go
downstairs.”
My throat goes tight. “You’ll mess up my hair. And my makeup,” I say,
grasping at any straw I can. Everything in me wants to say yes, but still I
hesitate.
“I promise I won’t,” he says, stepping closer, his mouth brushing my ear.
“You’ll just sit there like a queen while I worship you from my knees.”
Our gazes meet and my stomach sinks as his hand slides along my hip
and up my ribs. I feel myself nod, and his mouth tips up into a smile. He
takes my hand and slowly draws me into the bedroom, standing me in front
of the trunk at the foot of his bed.
He drops to his knees and slides his hands under my skirt, hooking into
the waistband of my underwear. With his eyes never leaving mine, he drags
them down my legs and helps me step out of them as I balance a hand on
his shoulder. My breath is shallow, and my heart is pounding hard enough
to feel right to my toes.
When he’s taken them off, he tosses them to the side and stands up. I
look up at him, his eyes swirling with magenta and teal and violet.
“Sit down,” he commands, and I’m helpless to resist as I drop onto the
trunk, suddenly wanting to obey his every whim. He drags a finger across
my cheek and hooks his thumb into my mouth. I bite down on it and he
groans, the colors in his eyes moving faster.
“Zerra, you’re going to destroy me, aren’t you, Heart Queen?”
He once again falls to his knees and presses his palms to the insides of
my thighs, spreading my legs apart.
“Lean back,” he says, and I do as he asks while he slides up my skirt,
baring me to him. For a moment, he doesn’t move. He just stares before he
grips my knees and then looks up with a grin that lights up his entire face.
The sight of it makes my heart twist.
“Don’t you dare close your legs. I want to get a look at how beautiful you
are.” Then he leans down and runs his nose through my wetness, inhaling
deeply with a moan. Moving in closer, he lifts up one of my legs and drapes
it over his shoulder just as he licks me with a long, luxurious sweep of his
tongue.
My hips buck, and I cry out as one of my hands threads into his hair
while I use the other to balance myself. He licks me again, the tip of his
tongue circling my clit as my entire back bows in response.
“Zerra, you are better than fine wine and thousand-year-old whisky,” he
groans as he drags my hips forward. He feasts on me, fucking me with his
tongue as he laps me up like he’s lost in the desert and looking for water.
“Nadir,” I gasp, gripping the strands of his thick, dark hair, my head
tipping back. “Oh gods, don’t stop.”
He doubles his efforts at that, the stubble on his chin offering delicious
friction as I grind my hips into his face. “Yes,” I pant, sure the makeup he
promised he wouldn’t ruin must be melting off.
I feel the tip of his finger dip inside me, and I look down. He’s observing
me with an intense expression as he slowly eases it in. We both watch
where he fucks me with his hand before he adds another finger and then
leans in again, the tip of his tongue roughly circling my clit.
My release is right there, but I resist it, wanting to prolong this just for a
little longer. Right now might be the freest I’ve ever felt. In this Keep that
once haunted my dreams with this dark prince at my feet, I feel more
powerful than I ever have in my life. There are still so many things to
overcome, but possibility—pure bright unfiltered possibility—looms before
me with the promise of the future I was denied.
“Lor,” Nadir growls as he thrusts his fingers into me and then curls them,
“come for me.” And then I do, letting out a cry as a wave of sensation rocks
through me, shuddering through my limbs and toes and fingers. I keep on
coming, the surge cresting over me for what feels like forever before I
finally catch my breath.
Nadir remains on the floor, watching me with a sort of reverence I can’t
interpret. His face shines with the evidence of my release, and he gives me
a dark smile before he reaches up and kisses my neck, sucking gently on the
skin.
“You see, Heart Queen?” he whispers. “Like I promised, there isn’t a hair
out of place.”
Chapter Thirty-four

W hen my breathing finally returns to normal, Nadir rises and draws


me up to stand, kissing the back of my hand.
“We should go,” he says, his voice thick. “We’ll finish this after the
party.”
I nod with my heart caught in my throat, both disappointed we have to
leave but also relieved I have a bit of time to contemplate the idea of losing
myself completely to him. It’s getting harder to separate my emotions from
my desires, and if we continue in this manner, I might lose myself to a point
I swore I wouldn’t.
He won’t have my heart.
At least for now, this gives me some time to get my head on straight and
remind myself this is only physical. He gives me another once-over that I
feel with a throb low in my stomach, and then he steps back, holding out his
elbow for me.
“Let’s go, Heart Queen.”
“Am I getting my underwear back this time?”
He gives me a predatory grin. “Definitely not.”
I sigh, pretending to be put out, and take his arm.
We make our way through the Keep, following the trickle of guests also
decked out for an evening of entertainment, just as we arrive at yet another
large room designated for tonight’s party. The space is lined with fur rugs
and wooden benches covered with thick blankets. The ceiling is open to the
night sky, and a massive bonfire burns in the center of the room, flames
leaping and sparking in the air. I see Amya holding court with a circle of
admiring Fae, her smile bright as they all laugh at something she’s just said.
Nadir takes my hand and winds us through the crowd. By now, the elite
of The Aurora have become accustomed to my presence and know who I
am. Or at least they know the story we’ve been telling.
“Nadir,” comes a cold voice, and we both come to a halt in front of his
father. Nadir’s hand tightens against mine before he draws me closer.
“Father,” he says, his tone equally chilly. The king peers around Nadir,
and for the first time in years, his eyes land on me.
“You haven’t introduced me to this lovely young woman who’s been
occupying all your time. How insufferably rude.”
Nadir tenses and my own breath kicks in my chest. Does he suspect
something? Why is he suddenly noticing me now?
However, the king’s gaze is fused with mild boredom and mostly disdain.
He’s only asking to get under Nadir’s skin, not because he really cares who
I am. Nevertheless, something fiery licks in my chest. How can this monster
stand a foot in front of me and have no idea who I am? I meant so little to
him that he can’t even be bothered to remember my face?
Sure, I was younger and was a very different version of myself, but
hatred so pure and white burns straight to my fingertips, forcing them to
curl against the fabric of my skirt. I used to think Nadir was cold and
unfeeling, but he’s a raging inferno of passion compared to the king, whose
entire demeanor speaks to the indifference of a windswept tundra. Lonely,
barren, and dead.
Nadir tugs me back, stepping ever so slightly in front of me. I know it’s
to protect me, but I refused to be dismissed.
“It’s a pleasure to meet you,” I say, holding out a hand to the king,
leaving it poised in midair. My jaw hardens as I note the indecision in his
face before he finally deigns to take it and then tips his chin. I conceal the
shudder that runs down my back as he drops my hand, his lip curling.
“The pleasure is mine,” he says evenly, his eyes sweeping over me again
with cool apathy. It’s so patently obvious he thinks I’m beneath him.
“Nadir,” the king says, dismissing me again. “I need you to speak to
Karlo when he arrives. He’s keen on my proposal, and I know you two go
way back.”
I resist the urge to scream at the king as he pretends I don’t exist. To
shake him and confront him with what he did. Nadir tugs my hand softly,
just enough that I snap out of my trance. I will get my opportunity, I remind
myself. I just need to be patient.
“Why do you need me?” Nadir asks.
The king pelts him with a hard look. “Are you not the heir to this
kingdom? At least pretend to show some interest in running it.”
It’s my turn to squeeze Nadir’s hand as his jaw clenches. He drops his
head forward. “Of course, Father. I’ll do what I can,” he bites out, and Rion
arches a dark brow before he nods curtly and turns away. When he’s
disappeared into the masses, Nadir swings to me.
“What the fuck did you do that for?”
I shake my head. “I’m sorry. It’s just when he looks through me like
that…” I trail off, staring at the space where the king disappeared, my heart
thudding in my chest. “Sometimes I don’t think. He barely noticed me,
anyway.”
Tristan can say whatever he wants about how I’ve grown, but it’s
moments like this when I’m reminded of how far I still have to go. One day
I’ll learn to control the impulsiveness and wildness that got me into trouble
so many times in Nostraza.
The look on Nadir’s face when I turn back to him clenches something in
my chest. “I…get it,” he says softly. Still holding my hand, he draws me
closer, his finger coming under my chin to tip my face up. “I get it. But you
need to be careful.”
His face is so close to mine that the noise and the surrounding chaos dims
to a hushed murmur. Why do I go breathless every time he looks at me like
that? Why does he keep looking at me like that? Like he wants to peel me
apart and consume the pieces of my soul.
“We should go find Vale,” Nadir says, pulling away, and I don’t know
why that disappoints me. What did I want him to do in this room full of
people? He’s already told me he’s ready whenever I am, but I’m leaning off
the edge of a cliff and trying not to look down.
He tugs on my hand again, moving us through the crowd. I snatch a
cocktail from a passing server and take a sip of the dark, earthy liquid. It’s
garnished with a floating cinnamon stick and a slice of orange. The alcohol
warms my insides and helps to dull the electricity of my fraying emotions.
Nadir takes us to an area lined with overstuffed leather couches where a
High Fae sits. His face is lined like the king’s, marking him as slightly
older, though he still could pass for little more than forty in human years.
“Vale,” Nadir says, his voice strangely warm as the male stands up and
embraces him. He’s got dark auburn hair clipped neatly around his pointed
ears and is wearing an impeccable emerald suit. After greeting Nadir, his
bright blue eyes land on me.
“Who do we have here?”
“This is my friend,” Nadir says, clearly declining to give my name. Vale
doesn’t hesitate to take my hand and press his mouth to the back of it with a
smile far more approving than the king’s.
“Well, aren’t you a lovely little thing?” He leans closer, as though to
whisper in my ear. “If the prince is boring you, I can assure you I’d show
you all kinds of fun.”
Nadir growls low in his throat, his hand coming to Vale’s chest and
pushing him back with a bit more force than is probably necessary. “Don’t
make me banish you to the ozziller pits, Vale.” His tone is light, but the
threat is obvious. Vale’s tanned skin pales a fraction, and then he breaks into
a grin.
“You know I’m just having a little fun, my boy.” He claps a large hand on
Nadir’s shoulder, and Nadir’s eyes darken as he glares at Vale. Zerra,
neither of us seems capable of controlling our emotions tonight. Don’t we
make quite a pair.
“Nadir, don’t be so rude. You were just telling me what a great spinner of
tales Vale is, and I want to hear something…entertaining,” I say, making my
voice light and playful. If we’re going to get any information out of this
Fae, we need to get on his good side.
“Of course,” Nadir says tightly, catching my drift. “May we join you?”
“That would be wonderful,” Vale says, gesturing to the empty space on
the sofa. Nadir places himself very deliberately between the two of us as we
settle into the soft leather.
A server stops, lowering her tray and offering us a drink. I exchange my
empty glass for a small tumbler of ruby red wine. Vale reaches for a whisky,
and Nadir declines a drink. His arm slides along the back of the couch,
wrapping around my shoulders. I know what he’s doing and Vale doesn’t
miss it either, his eyes dropping to my legs that are now bare thanks to the
opening in my skirt. I wonder how I can use this to my advantage without
sending Nadir off into an annoying, possessive Fae tirade.
“What have you been up to lately?” Nadir asks casually, his gaze
sweeping over the room.
“I’m opening a new club up in the Crimson District. Very exciting stuff,”
Vale says, rubbing his hands together. “You’ll have to come see it when it
opens,” he says to me, his eyes overtly dipping to my cleavage. What a pig.
“I don’t think so,” Nadir says, glowering at Vale. For someone he claims
to like, Nadir is behaving about as pleasantly as if he’s sitting on a flaming
porcupine right now. Is this because of me? I don’t know why he thinks I’m
not visiting Vale’s club, but I plan to remind him later he’s not the arbiter of
what I can and can’t do. Perhaps I’ll go just to annoy Nadir.
Vale continues talking, rambling about this venture and that investment,
and Nadir is getting visibly frustrated. Neither of us can get a word in. As
I’m trying to decide how to steer the conversation in a new direction, a low
fae servant emerges through the crowd. She has grey skin and a fall of long
green hair, along with shimmery scales running across her cheekbones. She
bows to Nadir.
“Pardon me, Your Highness, but the king asked me to retrieve you.”
Nadir sighs and runs a hand down his face. “I better go.” His eyes flick to
me. “Will you be okay for a few minutes?”
“Of course.” I nod. “Go on.”
Nadir pauses, his mouth opening and then closing again, before he lifts
himself up. He gives me one more lingering look before he follows the
servant through the crowd. The moment he’s out of eyesight, Vale slides
closer, his arm easing against the back of the couch.
“I thought he’d never leave,” Vale says and winks. I offer him a loose
smile, even though every bone in my body wants to resist.
“How about another drink?” I ask, holding up my empty glass.
“I like the sound of that,” he says, gesturing to a server who delivers us
two more whiskies. Vale takes a deep sip of his and lets out a sigh, his head
dropping back. I clutch mine in my hands, leaving it untouched. I need to
slow down. I don’t want another repeat of my first night here, and I need to
keep my wits coherent.
“Ah, I always miss this when I’m traveling. Nothing tops the vintage
they make in the Amber District. No one in Ouranos even comes close.”
I peer into my glass and take a tiny sip. It slides down my throat with a
mixture of cinnamon and honey, warming my stomach. “It’s lovely, yes.”
Vale takes another long draught and then gestures to a server for another.
“More?” he asks, and I hold up my still-full glass.
“I’m good for now, thank you.”
Vale shrugs and accepts another drink. His posture is getting looser, and
I’m starting to wonder just how many of those he’s had.
“Where have you been traveling?” I ask, trying to infuse my voice with
wonder and naivety. Here I am, a poor silly human who’s never ventured
further than the borders of The Aurora. Too bad that’s mostly true.
A smile flickers across Vale’s lips, and he leans back, surveying the
crowded room. I resist the urge to roll my eyes at his smugness.
“Have you traveled much?” he asks.
“I haven’t had the opportunity.”
Vale leans closer, his body pressing against mine now, and I swallow the
tension in my shoulders. My dark past comes back to rear its head, and how
many times must I do this to get what I want? Is this what it comes back to
every time? I hold completely still, gripping my glass tightly.
“I’ve been on a mission of sorts,” Vale says, his green eyes sparkling.
“A mission? That sounds fascinating,” I reply, figuring flattery can’t hurt.
“Indeed,” Vale says. “I’ve been tasked with finding a very special object
for the king.”
My breath seizes in my chest.
“What kind of object?” I carefully make my voice neutral, widening my
eyes, continuing my charade of the dazed ingenue.
Vale smiles, pressing in closer. He’s finished his drink and deposits the
glass on the table in front of him. His hand lands on my knee, and I inhale a
sharp breath that I hope he mistakes for interest instead of the cold slither of
dread that slides down my back.
“A very rare and powerful one,” he replies in a low voice that I suppose
is meant to be seductive. Bile climbs up my throat, but I think he’s about to
reveal something important, and this might be my chance.
“What is it?” I ask, dropping my own voice to a breathy whisper. He’s the
most fascinating man you’ve ever met, I tell myself over and over. Just lean
into this.
“Oh, you’ve probably never heard of it.” His tone drips with
condescension. “The Ark is one of the rarest objects to ever exist. It hasn’t
been seen in centuries.” He taps the side of his nose as I frown.
“The what?”
His hand slides higher, his fingers stopping short of the fabric of my
dress. They twitch against my skin as if he’s holding every part of himself
back. I take in a shaky breath, covering it with a sip of whisky.
“It’s—”
Suddenly, Vale is jerked away, knocking the glass from my hand, the
contents spilling on the thick rug at my feet, splashing onto my bare shins.
Nadir has Vale by the collar, fury and thunder in his expression. He cocks
his arm and punches Vale so hard I hear the crunch of his nose collapsing as
his head flings back. The entire room gasps as every single eye falls on us.
My cheeks burn with anger, with embarrassment, with the vile,
uncomfortable encounter I just allowed to happen. Again, I had to use my
body to get what I want, and I’m fucking sick of it. And I didn’t even get
anything. He isn’t searching for the Crown at all.
“What the fuck, Nadir,” I hiss, jumping up from the sofa. I’m not entirely
sure what I’m mad at. Me for letting this happen. Him for overreacting.
Everything for leading us to yet another dead end.
I don’t give him the chance to reply, instead spinning on my heel and
storming away. The crowd parts for me, all of them gawping. I don’t look
anyone in the eye as I head for the exit, my skin hot and itching, my dress
suddenly too tight.
Finally, I get to the door and storm through it, taking a deep breath.
“Lor!” Nadir catches up to me. “Wait.”
“What the fuck was that?” I spin around and point back to the room.
“He was touching you,” Nadir snarls, his face a mask of fury.
“So what? I was prying information from him since you weren’t getting
anywhere.”
“You’re mine. No one touches you without my permission,” Nadir says,
his voice dropping. His hand circles my upper arm, his touch hot and
electric. My magic snaps towards him, but I pull it away.
I don’t want this. I don’t want him. This cannot happen. The Torch
already warned me, and I’d be the greatest fool in the world to fall for any
of this again.
“I’m not yours,” I hiss.
“I can still taste you, Inmate,” he purrs, low and deadly.
“It’s just sex. That’s what you said. I’m the one who says who can touch
me, not you!”
“Lor—”
I hold up a hand. “No. Stop. This is over.” I gesture between us. “This
was a terrible idea to begin with. We’ve failed at our task, and I don’t want
to see you ever again. I’ll do this on my own.”
“Fine,” Nadir snarls, his entire demeanor shifting. “Go back to Vale.
Spread your legs for him.”
I stare at him, my mouth dropping open. Despite what I just said, those
words tear an open gash through my soul.
“How dare you?” I take a step back, needing space.
“Is that what you did for Atlas, too?”
I shake my head and wrap my arms around myself. I can’t believe he’s
saying these things to me.
“I hate you,” I say, the words as bitter as poison.
“I know.” His eyes are a maelstrom of rage and desire, and I have to push
my emotions down, burying them where all of my demons live. Where I’ll
lock them away because I have far more important things to do than worry
about my tangled feelings for this asshole.
He’s my enemy.
He’s always been the enemy. The reminder and symbol of everything I
lost.
How could I have forgotten that?
“Fuck you,” I whisper. “Find somewhere else to sleep tonight. I don’t
want you anywhere near me.”
With that, I spin on my heel and storm away.
Chapter Thirty-five

Nadir

I watch her go with my breath twisted tight and my fists clenching so


hard they ache. I’m going to pay for what I just did to Vale, but when I
saw the way he was touching her, and how uncomfortable she was, I lost it.
What the fuck is wrong with me? Why do I care so much?
She’s a challenge, that’s all. She hates me so much that I want to keep
pushing her. Push her to admit she wants me. But if that’s all it is, then why
do I want to claim her as mine? I shake my head and run a hand through my
hair, gripping it tight just for something to hang on to. I’ll never see her
again once this is all over, I reason. If any of us lives through this, maybe at
the occasional formal affair once she takes her throne. Then I can move on
with my life and get her out of my head.
But I’m not stupid enough to really believe any of that is true.
I take a deep breath, trying to force myself to relax. I should go and
apologize. She can take care of herself, and I should have let her deal with
it. She’s proven that enough times already.
But I didn’t want to. She’s mine. I don’t know why I believe it with such
conviction, but deep in my bones, I know she belongs to me. And I’ll die
before anyone else touches her.
Zerra, I can’t believe I said those things to her. I’d deserve it if she never
speaks to me again. I’ll give her some space to calm down and then go
smooth things over. Whatever it takes, I’ll do anything to make it up to her.
I spin around, not really sure where I should go. Not back to the party
and not to my room. I suck in a sharp breath when I see my father watching
me, his hands in his pockets and his posture loose.
“That was quite the performance,” he drawls as he saunters over, his
voice glacial.
I shrug, feigning a nonchalance I certainly don’t feel. Fuck, I’ve never
been so wound up in my entire life.
“You know how women can be,” I say, knowing I’ve already played my
hand by attacking Vale. I should know better than to lose control with my
father around. I’m no better than Lor at keeping my emotions in check. I’ve
failed her in so many ways tonight.
“Where did you find her?” the king asks, peering at me with a strange
light in his eyes.
“At the Scarlett Flower,” I say, plucking the name of a brothel in the
Crimson District from thin air. “She was an especially enthusiastic…
purchase,” I add, trying to keep my voice smooth.
“Oh? I wasn’t aware you were a patron.”
My mouth tips up into a half smile. “Why wouldn’t I be?”
“What did you just call her? Lor, was it?”
“A stage name,” I say, something sharp clawing up the back of my scalp.
“Of course,” Rion says, scratching his chin. “Are you coming back to the
party? Vale is nursing his jaw, but he should know better than to get too
friendly with something that clearly belonged to you. Bygones, I’m sure.”
“Yes. I’ll be there in a minute. I was about to find Jessamine to discuss
the labor bill, as you requested.”
That’s me. The ever-dutiful son, carrying out his father’s wishes in the
end.
“Good.” He says it with a slow nod, his gaze sweeping over me with
assessment. “Perhaps you’ll finally be worthy of this role and see this is for
the best, Nadir.”
With those biting remarks, the king turns and heads to the ballroom as I
try to burn holes into his skin with the heat of my hatred.
I watch as he greets the head of the Fuchsia District and her bonded
partner who fawn over him like the cloying sycophants they are.
But as soon as my father disappears through the crowd, I turn and run.
He knows.
With my heart thundering in my chest, I blast through the Keep, my legs
pumping. When I reach my wing, I order my guards not to let anyone
through, especially the king’s men.
After slamming through the door of my bedroom, panic rolls over my
back when I find it empty.
“Lor!”
Storming into the room, I notice the dress she was wearing hanging off
the back of the sofa. I spin around. I can’t think straight. Where is she?
“Lor!”
I find her in the bathroom, scrubbing her makeup off, refusing to look at
me.
“I told you to find somewh—”
“He knows,” I interrupt.
She stops, her dark eyes spreading wide. ”Knows what?”
“He knows who you are.”
The color drains from her face as she clutches the cloth to her chest.
“That little stunt you pulled—”
“That I pulled! You’re the one who caused a scene!”
There isn’t time to argue about this.
“He knows. He didn’t say it, but I could tell. He fucking knows.”
I turn on my heel and send a blast of magic towards the door, erecting a
barricade against anyone trying to break it down before I go to dig into the
closet. Lor follows me, her eyes wild with panic.
“Get dressed in as many warm clothes as you can. We’re leaving. Now.”
Zerra, I want to kill my father. I want to shove his head into a hole filled
with scorpions and watch him choke on his own tongue. I want to rip him
apart with my bare hands and bathe in his blood.
But first, I have to get Lor out of here.
For once, she doesn’t argue, her face ashen and her hands trembling. She
stuffs her feet into her boots and pulls a thick sweater over her head. She’s
refusing to look at me, because I’ve fucked this entire thing up.
Even now, with the threat of Rion over our heads, I can’t get past how
beautiful she is. How she makes me feel every time she’s in the room and
maybe, more importantly, how she makes me feel when she isn’t.
I’m worried she’ll never let me touch her again. Tonight was going to be
so perfect, and I ruined it. Gods, how I want to explore her. To have her in
ways I’ve never had anyone.
I dress rapidly, forcing myself to take a deep breath and listen with one
ear trained on the door. Has the king realized I know? Will he send his
guards now or later? Fuck. How could I have been so careless? I’m
supposed to protect her.
She digs into the chest at the foot of the bed, pulling out gloves and a
scarf and a thick furry hat. My gaze constantly darts to the door, waiting for
it to burst open. But I’m not sorry that I clocked Vale. The fucker deserved
it for putting his hands on her.
When Lor is bundled up, I flick my head towards the balcony. That’s
when my bedroom door shudders, the shield of my magic rippling against
the assault. We both look at it and then each other.
“Come on.”
Defiance and anger flicker in her eyes. She hates me more than she ever
has, but she’s not stupid. She does as I ask, scurrying for the balcony.
“I’ll need to carry you.” I’m not sure why that’s so hard to say. Lor tips
up her chin, her brown eyes flashing as another loud bang rattles the door,
the barrier holding on for now.
“Fine.” The word is clipped at the end, and the sound slices out a piece of
my heart. I ignore the stab of pain as I scoop her into my arms. For a
moment, I can’t breathe with our noses almost touching and our breath
fogging in the cool air. I want to tell her I’ll protect her. That I’ll do
anything to keep her safe, and that I fucked up tonight. But I can’t make the
words come out.
“Ready?” I ask her instead, because I’m nothing but a fucking coward.
She nods. “Ready.”
I leap onto the guardrail, my magic erupting around us in a jumble of
ribbons before they form into a pair of wide wings. With one last glance
over my shoulder, I groan at the thought of how this night was supposed to
end. When I turn back to Lor, her expression is blank, her lips pressed into a
hard line.
The door shudders again, bowing out under the weight of the force on the
other side, the wood beginning to splinter. We’re officially out of time. I
drop from the balcony, and Lor’s grip tightens as we plunge for several feet
before my wings beat. Then we lift into the air, disappearing into the night.
Chapter Thirty-six

Lor

N adir’s magic closes over us as we shoot through the sky. My arms


snake around his neck as the cold air presses against me. I’m still
furious with him, but right now, his closeness is comforting because my
heart is wedged in my throat. The king knows. He figured it out. What does
that mean for me? How hard will he try to find me?
We fly for a few minutes before Nadir descends to earth. We’re deep in
the Void now, the crenellations of the Keep looming far in the distance.
“Lor,” he says, his voice rough, a sheen of sweat on his brow. “We need
to keep moving. I just need a minute.”
I nod and try to push my fear down, trying to get my hands to stop
shaking.
“Are you okay?” I ask.
“Yes.” He presses a fist to his chest and lets out a deep breath. “That was
too close. I’m not sure I’ve ever been so scared.”
“How much danger am I really in? He still thinks I’m powerless. He
hasn’t believed I’m the Primary in years.”
The look on Nadir’s face is full of regret. “He knows I was lying to him.
That I brought you to the Keep for a reason he’s currently trying to puzzle
out. If he hasn’t already, he’s going to realize he made a mistake. There was
no reason to hide you, otherwise.”
As he’s talking, I understand he’s right. Why couldn’t I have kept my
mouth shut?
“I messed this up,” I say, feeling the weight of everyone I’ve let down.
Nadir comes closer. “You didn’t do anything wrong. It was my fault. He
heard me say your name, and there was always a risk he’d figure it out.” He
scans the sky, which is flecked with stars and the striations of the Borealis
overhead. Tonight, they hold no beauty for me. Tonight, they’re the
reminder of twelve miserable years of captivity. Of the deaths of my parents
and everyone who’s suffered at the hands of the Aurora King.
“We should go.” I nod, casting a glance back towards the Keep,
wondering if the king is about to burst through the trees.
“You’re angry. Please, look at me.”
“Is this really the time?”
Of course I’m angry. He acted like a possessive asshole and then insulted
me to my face. I don’t need him fighting my battles. I knew this was a
mistake from the start, and tonight proved it once and for all. The Torch
already warned me and now Nadir swiftly hammered that final nail through
my heart.
His jaw hardens as he scans the sky again.
“Let’s go.” He holds out his hand and I take it, thankful my hands are
covered with thick gloves. Though it doesn’t seem to matter, my traitorous
heart still skips a beat when he squeezes my fingers.
He picks me up again, and though I want to resist, I don’t fight him.
Distancing ourselves from the Keep is the priority right now. We can deal
with this thing between us later. Or this thing that’s now over between us,
because I’m not doing this anymore.
His magic swirls around us again, and I can’t help but think about what
he promised to show me before we left for the party tonight. Nadir looks
down at me, but I turn away, not wanting him to read anything I’m thinking.
It’s freezing out here, and I bury into him, trying to get warm. A few
moments later, the same flow of magic he used the day we rode through the
forest envelops me in a warm cocoon.
We’re both silent as he shoots through the air, keeping as low to the trees
as possible. He seems like he wants to say something, but he remains quiet
before he looks forward into the darkness. I don’t know how much time
passes before I recognize a familiar sight.
“No,” I say as he swerves and drops us into the front courtyard of the
manor house before he sets me down.
“No?”
“We’re not bringing the king to where Willow and Tristan are. This is too
dangerous. You need to take me somewhere else. If something happens to
them, I’ll never forgive you.”
His hands land on my shoulders, and he turns me to face him. I’m
freaking out for a thousand different reasons.
“Lor. Calm down. My father doesn’t know this place exists. It’s hidden
from anyone I choose to hide it from. He won’t find them here. Or you. I
promise.”
“You swear?”
“I’m not going to let anything happen to you or your family.”
I don’t know why I still believe him after everything that’s happened, but
I do.
“Okay,” I say, looking towards the house that sits mostly dark, with only
a few dim lights flickering in the windows.
Nadir leads me inside, closing the door softly behind us. There is no
movement in the foyer, but we hear the sounds of chatter coming from the
library. I round the corner to find my brother and sister with Mael and
Hylene.
“Lor!” Willow shouts, jumping up from her seat and embracing me in a
tight hug. “What are you doing here?”
Nadir marches into the room and pours himself a large glass of wine
from the decanter on the table. “He knows,” he says, and the entire room
goes still against the crackling of the fire in the hearth. “We blew it.” He
looks at me. “I blew it,” he corrects himself.
“No, I screwed up, too. I couldn’t stop myself. Every time I saw him, I
wanted to—” I cut off, trembling from the depth of my fury.
And then I start to cry. It comes over me like a hundred-foot tidal wave
crashing into me without warning. I’ve been holding so much pain and so
many memories and tonight was one test too many. Willow pulls me down
into her chair, and I bury my face into her shoulder, my body wracked with
sobs.
“It’s okay,” Willow whispers. “Everything will be okay. We’ll figure this
out.”
I nod, but I don’t believe her. The king will never let me go. And now he
knows. Or if he doesn’t know the complete truth, he suspects something
now. Nadir is right. There was no reason to keep my presence a secret
otherwise. We took a chance on infiltrating the Keep, and we lost the game
with what I’m sure will be disastrous consequences.
That’s when the door swings open, and Amya strides into the room. She’s
dressed in her party clothes, her cheeks flushed and her usually perfect hair
loose and disheveled. “What happened! Why did you run out of there and
why did father send his guards to your wing?”
She presses her hand to her chest, breathing heavily. We fill her in on
what’s just occurred as her shoulders drop further and further.
“No,” she says softly, something broken in the sound.
“What are we going to do now?” Tristan asks, addressing everyone in the
room. “You still haven’t found the Crown, I take it?”
“No,” Nadir says, shaking his head. “But we have enough reason to
believe it’s not in the Keep.”
“Then where is it?”
Nadir pushes himself up from the chair and approaches me where I sit
with Willow, his face hardened into grim resolve. Something tells me he’s
bracing for what he’s about to say next.
“What?” I ask, sitting up and wiping the tears from my cheeks. “What is
it?”
I push myself up slowly so I can look him in the eye as he tips his chin
down to me.
“I know where we need to look.”
His words are as heavy as a ceiling of marble. The air in the room grows
thick, like the pressure before an impending storm, but there is no rain or
thunder or lightning, only an ostensible sense that everything is about to
change, yet again.
“I’m taking you to Heart, Inmate. It’s time to go home.”
Chapter Thirty-seven

“I ’m not going anywhere with you,” are the first words out of my
mouth.
“Well, you’re not going there without me. It’s too dangerous.”
We stare at one another, the argument from the party sitting between us,
but we’re surrounded by too many people, and this isn’t a conversation I
want to continue with an audience.
“Nadir,” I say, my voice low.
“Lor,” he growls, “you’re going with me or you’re not going. You can’t
get there on your own, and no one else can get you there as quickly as I can.
Besides, if my father does come for you, I’m in the best position to protect
you.”
I look at my siblings. “What about them? It’s their home, too.”
“When this is over, when you get the Crown and take your queendom
back, you can all go home.” Nadir inhales a deep breath. “I promised I’d
help you, and I intend to follow through.”
“Even now?” I ask, lifting my chin, both of us knowing what I mean.
Now that I’ve told him sex is off the table, is he still going to help me?
“Yes,” he says without hesitation. “That was never a condition and you
know it.”
“What’s this about?” Tristan asks, coming to stand next to me, ever my
protector. “What condition?”
“Nothing Tris. It’s fine.” My focus returns to Nadir. “I still don’t
understand why you want to help me.” I’m trying to see his angle. The
ground is swaying under me, and I can’t find my footing. “Surely you can
find a way to get rid of your father without me.”
“No, I cannot,” Nadir says in a way that clogs the back of my throat.
“And when we find the Crown and take back my queendom?”
Nadir frowns. “What do you mean?”
“What will you do then? Come back here?” My stomach twists with the
implications of what I’m asking. I told him I didn’t want to see him ever
again an hour ago, but it seems we’re stuck with each other for a little while
longer. But then what? Does he intend to let me rule in peace? Knowing
what I might be capable of?
“No,” Nadir says, “I mean, yes. I mean, I don’t know. It all depends.”
“On?”
“What happens,” he says.
“On what happens when you take the Crown from me?” I ask, trying to
force him to bend to whatever truths he’s hiding.
“No.” He shakes his head. “I don’t want the Crown from you. I didn’t
before. I don’t now. The Crown doesn’t matter to me, not in the way you’re
implying. I only care that you’re safe.” There’s a pained thread in his tone
that forces me to drop my guard, my shoulders slumping.
“I don’t know how to be safe,” I whisper. “I’ve never been safe.”
His expression darkens. “You’ll be safer with me than without me. I
promise I’ll protect you.”
“Lor,” Tristan says, wrapping his hand around my elbow. He turns me to
face him. “You should go with him.”
I blink in surprise. “I should?”
“This has all been set in motion now. You can’t go back anymore. The
Aurora King knows, or at least must suspect, what you are. He nearly killed
you trying to prove you were the Primary already, and he won’t stop now
that he has you in his sights again. The only way to get to the end is to go
through.”
Tristan gestures to Mael. “Tell her.”
“Tell me what?”
Mael looks at Nadir, a question in his expression. Nadir nods.
“The king has been rounding up all the women in the Heart settlements
and testing them.”
The weight of those words nearly crushes me, threatening to cut off my
air. “He’s looking for the Primary,” I say.
“That’s what we think,” Nadir adds. “But he’s probably realizing he
really did have you under his nose all along.”
“You knew?” I accuse. “And you didn’t tell me? Is he hurting them? Is he
killing them?”
My voice is rising with the horror of knowing what these women might
be suffering because I’ve been hiding.
“I didn’t think you needed that added burden on your shoulders.”
“He’s testing women because he’s looking for me! And I’ve been
swanning about the Keep going to fucking parties for the past two weeks.
You had no right to keep that from me!”
“What good would it have done? You are powerless without that Crown.
And even then, we don’t know if that’s the key to unlocking your magic.”
My entire body sags, knowing he’s right, but I’m hurt that he kept this
from me all the same. “You still should have told me.”
He presses his mouth together. “Maybe I should have, but it’s proof that
my father won’t stop at anything to get his hands on you, and the longer you
stand here arguing with me, the more danger you’re in.”
Now Willow joins Tristan. “Go home, Lor,” she says softly, and suddenly
I’m seized with longing for a place I’ve never seen except in my head.
Home.
A place I only know from the stories I’ve pieced together in my
imagination. Not even our mother lived there. She couldn’t fill in those gaps
for us, either. All we had were tales and rumors whispered on the wind.
Nothing concrete. Nothing we could hold on to.
“We’ll wait here for you. You have to do this. Tristan is right. There is no
going back anymore. The moment you were taken to Aphelion, it set into
action a course of destiny that can no longer be undone. We believe in you.
I’m sure this is how Zerra always meant for it to happen.”
It’s then I finally break, the crushing weight of the last two weeks nearly
folding me in two. The memories that have churned to the surface from
being in the presence of the Aurora King. The terror I felt when I walked
those dark hallways deep beneath the Keep. The way Nadir has turned me
inside out until I don’t know what I feel anymore.
My brother and sister wrap me in their embrace, and for a moment, we’re
transported back to Nostraza. On one of those days, when one of us was
feeling particularly melancholy. On one of those days when we didn’t need
words to convey the infinite depths of our loss and heartache. When all we
needed was to hold on to each other because our love was the only thing we
had left.
“I can do this,” I whisper, trying to believe it’s true, but I’ve never been
less sure of anything in my life. Willow takes my face in her hands and
stretches onto her tiptoes before placing a kiss on my forehead.
“You’ve always been so brave, my baby sister. It’s okay to be scared.
This is the biggest thing we could have ever asked for. It’s scary, but if there
was ever anyone who can face this, it’s you.”
“You know siblings are supposed to be meaner to each other,” I say with
a half sob and half laugh. “Give each other a hard time like these two.” I
gesture to Amya and Nadir, who are watching us intently. They blink when
I point at them before they look at each other with a smile.
Willow’s answering grin is crooked. “I don’t think that counts when you
grow up in prison together.”
I choke out another sob. “Gods, that’s really fucking depressing.”
That statement breaks the tension in the room, and everyone laughs
before Willow hugs me again.
I look at Nadir over my shoulder. “Okay, prince of The Aurora. You
aren’t the ally I expected to have and I’m still not entirely sure I trust you,
but you’re all I’ve got.”
Nadir’s smile is wry as he tips his head. “You really know how to flatter
a prince. We’ll leave at first light. It’s too risky to travel at night—my wings
are too visible. Try to get a few hours of sleep.”
I wipe my eyes and pull away from Willow as she takes my hand.
“Are you hungry?” she asks.
I shake my head.
“Your room is still made up,” Amya says. “I’ll just make sure everything
is in order.”
Willow leaves with Amya, Tristan trailing after, followed by Mael and
Hylene.
After everyone clears the room, Nadir turns back to me. “Do you think
they all did that on purpose? Left us alone?”
“Very subtle.”
“About tonight, with Vale. I’m sorry.”
“For what?”
“Not for punching the jackass, if that’s what you want to hear. I’m sorry
it upset you, though. And I didn’t mean those things I said.”
I let out a deep sigh, my irritation from earlier flaring.
“Then why did you say them?”
“Because I’m an imperfect asshole.” He pauses. “But it isn’t how I feel.
Your sister is right, you are brave and strong and have come through fire,
and I have a feeling you’ll still have to face a much bigger inferno before
this is done. I want to help you. I am in awe of your courage and
resilience.”
The edges of my anger soften a little at those words, but ultimately, they
change nothing.
“Nadir, I meant what I said earlier. This thing between us is over. I can’t
allow myself to get distracted anymore. I’m not too stubborn to understand
that I need your help if you’re willing to offer it, but I need to learn to
protect myself, and I’m not yours.”
Nadir sucks in a sharp breath and it’s obvious he wants to argue. His jaw
flexes, and his eyes flash with sparks of crimson.
“No, but you will be,” he says, and there is a solemn oath hidden in those
words. The expression on his face tells me this is far from the last I’ve
heard of this, but I must stay strong.
He will not have my heart.
I don’t respond to that statement, instead straightening my shoulders and
holding him with a look that I hope tells him I am resolute in my decision.
“I’ll see you in the morning.”
Nadir takes a step towards me, and I feel this moment for what it is. It’s a
reckoning, and somewhere along the way, I’m going to have to deal with
the consequences of everything that’s already happened between us.
“Goodnight, Heart Queen.”
Chapter Thirty-eight

I barely sleep. Instead, I toss and turn, my mind racing with horrific
visions of what’s happening to those women at the hands of the Aurora
King. I can practically hear their screams from across Ouranos.
He used his magic to bend and nearly break me. He dug into my skin and
into my organs and tried to shred the wall of my magic. But it held.
Through everything, I held out. And now that same strength is working
against me, and those women are being tortured, and I have to find a way to
break through my own walls. I have to find that Crown and pray it’s the
answer I’m seeking.
I see Nadir’s face, too. The way he looked at me when I told him I wasn’t
his and the way he answered. Why is he so certain of this? Why does he
even care?
He’s a prince. A man with his pick of any woman he could ever want.
Why does he keep coming back to me? I’m just a prison rat with nothing
but the ephemeral promise of a future I’m unlikely to survive. It’s
confusing. Frustrating. And honestly, I don’t have time for this right now. I
have to find that Crown. And somehow, I have to stop the Aurora King. I’m
more sure than ever his intentions for me are similar to what Atlas wanted.
I know I should be scared, but I’m well beyond that now. This has
become about something so much bigger than me.
Eventually, I cave to a restless version of sleep, my body never fully
relaxing. It’s far too soon when The Aurora sky lightens from silky black to
a strangely comforting grey. To think how much I once loathed its endless
dreariness. When did it start to feel more like a warm blanket? Probably
around the same time I kissed Nadir.
Fuck. No. That’s over.
Eventually, I drag myself from bed and dress in clothing suitable for
travel. Amya had already delivered some options before I went to sleep last
night.
What’s waiting for me in the ruined Queendom of Heart? What’s left of
the empire that once existed?
I don a pair of soft suede pants in dark grey and a thin black sweater
before I scoop my hair into a high ponytail. I put on a pair of sturdy boots
and grab the coat, mittens, and scarf I arrived with last night.
My stomach rumbles, so I go in search of breakfast. First, I need to see
Willow and Tristan and say goodbye to them yet again. Hopefully, this will
be the last time, but every time I leave them, I’m less and less certain I’m
ever coming back.
I knock on Willow’s door, hoping she’s awake already.
There is a shuffle on the other side. “Who is it?”
“It’s me,” I say.
“Oh.” She sounds uncertain and a moment later, the door cracks open.
She’s wearing a nightgown, her hair mussed from sleep.
There’s a movement behind Willow. Amya stands behind her, also
dressed in her nightgown and robe, looking rather uncertain.
“Hi, sorry. Am I interrupting?”
“No, not at all,” Willow says. “We were just about to have breakfast.”
She opens the door wider and gestures me inside. “Come join us. There’s
plenty.”
“Okay,” I say, entering the room, feeling increasingly awkward. Why is
Amya wearing her nightgown in my sister’s bedroom?
Seriously, Lor. What the hell do you think she’s doing here?
“Come sit,” Willow says, pulling me down next to her. “Tea?”
“What’s going on here?” I ask, and both of them wince. “Are you two…
together?”
“Uh,” Willow says, her cheeks going red. “We’re…getting to know one
another.”
“I see.” I accept the tea Willow holds out to me, cradling the mug
between my hands and looking at Amya. “You know she’s never been with
anyone that way before?”
“Lor!” Willow cries, her face turning bright red. “Stop it!”
I glare at Willow and then back at Amya, who’s sitting in the chair across
from me.
“Willow has told me everything of her past,” Amya says softly. “I know
that already.”
“So you know to be careful with her.”
“Lor! I swear to the gods,” Willow exclaims, dropping her face into her
hands. “You’re worse than Tristan. Not that it’s any of your business, but
we haven’t done anything other than talk. We’re friends.”
I raise a skeptical eyebrow. “In your bed? In your nightclothes?”
Willow’s eyebrows draw together. “I have dreams, Lor. Nightmares.
They keep me awake. Amya’s presence helps. I’m not used to sleeping in
this big room alone.” Her voice is a pained whisper, and I immediately feel
guilty for what I’ve said.
Of course, I understand what she means. I felt the same way when I first
woke up in Aphelion. But I’d also been too overwhelmed by the Trials to
truly process everything. Waiting here for me, Willow and Tristan haven’t
had the luxury of those same distractions.
Amya sits forward in her seat, her eyes never leaving me. “Your sister is
the kindest, most selfless person I’ve ever met. She’s absolutely beautiful
on the inside and out and as she said, we’re just getting to know one
another. I understand why you’re protective of her, but I swear I only have
her best interests at heart.”
“Amya, you don’t have to do this,” Willow says, throwing me a glare.
“This is none of Lor’s business.”
“It’s okay,” Amya says. “I know what it’s like to care about you.”
Willow throws up her hands and sits back. “Well, I suppose I’ll just let
you both talk about me then, like I’m not even here.”
I can’t help the smile that creeps to my face at that. Amya follows with
one of her own and our gazes meet as a tentative understanding falls
between us.
“Fine. I’ll stay out of it.” I finally take a sip of my tea, savoring the heat
as it slides down my throat and then stick Amya with a glare. “But
understand this, princess of The Aurora, if you hurt her, I’ll kill you.”
Amya’s nod is grave. “Understood, Heart Queen.”
“Good. Now pass me one of those pastries.”
Willow grabs the basket and holds it away from me.
“Not before we have a chat about you and the prince.” Her look is
pointed and after what I just said, I totally deserve it.
“Yeah, we are not talking about that.” I leap up and snatch the basket
from her, grabbing a golden glazed pastry and stuffing it into my mouth.
Both Amya and Willow laugh. It’s then I’m rescued by a knock at the
door. Tristan enters without waiting for a reply.
“Tristan! You can’t just walk into my room!” Willow exclaims. “Between
you and Lor, I’m going to have to find somewhere else to stay.”
Tristan’s brow furrows. “Why, what did Lor do?”
“Nothing,” I say. “Come and eat with us.”
Tristan shrugs and drops into the other chair. He doesn’t seem at all
surprised by Amya’s presence in Willow’s room, and I suppose this must
have been going on for at least a little while. I’m hardly one to talk anyway,
and my cheeks heat when I think about everything I’ve already done with
Nadir.
Before long, we’re joined by Mael and the prince, who also does a
double-take at finding Amya here in her nightclothes. He says nothing,
though.
“We should leave soon,” Nadir says to me. “I don’t want to linger here
any longer than we need to.”
“You said your father didn’t know about this place, and they’re safe
here.” I gesture to my brother and sister.
“They are,” he says, gritting his teeth. “But it’s still safer for you to keep
moving.”
“Fine, I’m ready when you are.”
“How long will it take?” Tristan asks.
“A few hours,” Nadir says. “I’m a bit slower when I’m carrying
someone, but we can still get there before the sun sets.”
“Where exactly are you going?” Willow asks. “What’s left there?”
My brother and sister have all the same questions I do. I wish they could
come and see it as well. It seems wrong to go there for the first time without
them.
“It’s basically a black hole of nothing,” Mael says, leaning back in his
chair. “Dead forest and swampland for miles interspersed with the ruins of
the city that once existed.”
“What about the people who died?” I ask. It’s a morbid question, but I
need to know.
Mael shrugs. “All long gone. It’s been centuries.”
I swallow, my throat suddenly tight.
“What about the settlements? Who lives there?”
“The people who got out alive,” Nadir says. “They’re waiting…”
“Waiting for…me.”
He tips his head. “Waiting for their queen.”
I take a deep breath and stand up, smoothing down the front of my
sweater.
“Then I guess we shouldn’t keep them any longer.”
Willow takes my hand and stands up, wrapping me in a hug.
“Come back to us soon, Lor.”
I nod against her and hope that’s a promise I can keep.
Chapter Thirty-nine

A short while later, we’ve all gathered in the main foyer to say
goodbye. Nadir traipses from the direction of the kitchen with a giant
pack on his back.
“What’s all that?”
“Food, provisions, a tent,” he replies.
“Where’s mine?”
“It’s all here. I’ve got enough for both of us.”
“I can carry my own things.”
He narrows his gaze. “I can carry them. It’s fine.”
I roll my eyes. “Okay then, I’ll keep my hands free for the important
work.”
He smirks and then turns to his sister. “The wards will hold while I’m
gone. Father is going to be looking for me, but I think you should return to
the Keep for a few days to avoid suspicion. You too, Mael. He’s going to
assume you know where I am, but you’ll be able to feign ignorance if
you’re also at the Keep. Hopefully, he’s still occupied with the labor bill
and his attention is divided.”
They both nod and then he turns to me. “Come. We should go.”
I nod and turn to give Tristan and Willow one more hug. “I love you,” I
say to them both, trying not to make it sound like I’m saying goodbye. “I’ll
be back.”
“I know you will,” Tristan says, his voice hard.
“Okay, I’m ready,” I say to Nadir, and we step outside. The wind has
picked up since yesterday and I shiver. Nadir holds out a hand to me.
“Are you going to carry me again?”
“That is the easiest way to do this.”
“Can’t I go on your back or something?” I don’t like the way he makes
me feel when he carries me like I’m his bride. It feels like too much.
“I have the pack,” he says, his eyes lighting with mischief, and I can’t
help but wonder if he planned it this way. I want to keep arguing, but we’re
wasting time and this is ridiculous.
“Fine.” I take his hand and give him a look that tells him not to try
anything. His expression is one of mock innocence, and I think of the final
words he said to me last night. That I would become his, eventually.
He pulls me close, my front pressing to his. As I glance up, our gazes
lock in place for a few heartbeats, his irises swirling with violet. He doesn’t
affect me at all. Sure, let’s go with that.
“Time to go, Inmate,” he whispers with a deadly caress before he scoops
me into his arms and we’re surrounded by the ribbons of his magic. A
moment later, we launch into the sky as his warm shield slides over my
skin.
For hours, we move over the landscape as it changes beneath us,
morphing from the cold mountains and endless black Void of The Aurora
before giving way to lush green hills and forest. The steady movement of
flight lulls me into peaceful relaxation, and it’s all I can do to resist sleep
after my restless night, my head bobbing with the weight of holding it up.
“Put your head down,” he says to me, finally. “It’s fine. I won’t bite.”
“You must be getting tired. We’ve been at this for hours.”
“I’m okay for now,” he replies. “We’ll stop for a break soon.”
I hesitate, but my eyelids are heavy, and I ignore the voice reminding me
that was the first time in the past two weeks I’d slept without Nadir at my
side. Giving up, I lay my head against him, my forehead pressing to his
throat, wondering if I imagine his responding shiver.
When I wake up, it’s to the sound of crackling logs and the smell of
smoke. The sky is blue, no longer grey, and it takes me a moment to adjust.
For a long minute, I lie still and listen to the sounds of my own breathing,
the rushing of water, and the wind in the trees. I sit up, my head woozy.
“Hey,” I mumble.
Nadir is staring at me with an intense look that makes me flush. “How
are you doing?”
Pushing my hair from my face, I take in my surroundings, something
catching in my throat.
“What’s wrong?” Nadir asks, clearly reading my emotions.
I shake my head. “This reminds me of where we grew up before…”
“Before my father came and slaughtered your parents and threw you in
prison?”
I shoot him a dark look, but there is none of the usual hardness in his
face. Instead, I see something else. Not pity. But something close to that.
“Yah. That.”
“We’re in the northern forests of what was once part of Heart. It belongs
to The Aurora for now.”
I don’t miss the “for now” in that statement.
He holds out a canteen to me and I take it, drinking a long gulp of cool
water.
“How much farther do we have to go?”
“Not far.”
“What’s the plan when we get there?” I ask, taking another sip of water
and accepting the piece of bread he hands me.
“We’ll have to avoid the settlements. I was hoping to get a look at what’s
going on myself, but if any of my father’s soldiers see me, there’s little
chance it won’t get back to him. We’ll comb the castle. In and out as
quickly as possible.”
I sit up straighter. “We have to help those women. We can’t leave them
like that at his mercy. What if he kills them? Or worse?”
He shakes his head. “There’s nothing we can do. If they catch us, then
we’re…you’re done.”
“We can’t leave them. I need to know he isn’t hurting them.”
Nadir lets out a sigh and runs a hand down his face. “Let’s find the
Crown first—” He raises a hand when I’m about to protest. “Let’s find the
Crown and then I promise we’ll find a way to rescue them. You are no use
like this, and you’ll be even less so if my father gets his hands on you.”
I snap my mouth shut. Of course, what he’s saying makes perfect sense.
“You swear it?”
“I promise.”
It’s not enough, but I understand it’s the best I can hope for right now. I
hate how powerless I am. How powerless I’ve always been.
We sit in silence for a while longer, the crackle of the fire and the sounds
of the forest soothing my tired nerves. I used to love the forest when I was a
child. Willow, Tristan, and I would spend hours lost in the trees, foraging
for berries and building forts from fallen branches.
I smile to myself when I remember the time Tristan dumped a beehive on
Willow and me while we were having a picnic. We were so mad at him, but
he just laughed until we got him back later when we shoved him off a rope
bridge into the river. I don’t have many memories of our time before the
king took us, but I cling to those happy ones like they can keep me safe
from everything that’s coming.
When all this is over, maybe we can spend time in the forest again. I
think about Willow and Tristan and the future I hope I can finally give
them. Maybe they’ll fall in love and have families of their own.
“We should get going soon,” Nadir says, peering at the sky. “I don’t want
to still be flying when the sun sets.”
I nod in understanding. “I’m ready whenever you are.”
He packs up our things, and I watch him while trying to pretend I’m not
staring. Like a moth to a flame, I’m drawn to the chiseled lines of his face
and those flashing eyes that see straight through me. I can still feel the
warmth of his skin under my hands. The curve and dip of those muscles and
the way he tasted in my mouth. The sounds that I drew from him that day.
My magic kicks under my skin. It’s angry that I’m denying it his
presence and his touch. I’m sure of that, but I’m not giving in.
Once he’s done, he holds out his hand, and reluctantly I take it. Without a
word, he scoops me up and we’re off into the sky, the world below
smearing into a green blur. After we’ve flown for a while, his arms tighten
around me and I look up, wondering what has set him off.
That’s when I see it. Ahead of us stretches a black blot. Like a bottle of
ink tipped over a patch of freshly grown grass. The jagged remains of a land
that was once whole and prosperous. In the center, a group of towers rises,
blackened and broken, like twisted fingers pleading for help that never
came.
My breath stutters, and a strangled whimper exhales from my chest. In all
my dreams and in all my nightmares, I never imagined I would find myself
here some day.
It’s there, in all its decaying glory.
A story of sadness and loss. Of ego and mistakes and the consequences
of wanting too much.
A shadow of the legacy that has haunted me every single day of my life.
The Queendom of Heart.
Chapter Forty

Serce

I t took three weeks to make arrangements for the visit back to Heart.
First, Serce sent a message to Rion, alerting him of their plans—or at
least the ones she meant for him to know about. Wolf readied his soldiers
because she had no intention of entering Heart without reinforcements. His
army wasn’t quite as large as her mother’s, but she hoped she would have
the element of surprise on her hands. She also hoped this visit wouldn’t
come to a physical altercation, but it was best to always be prepared.
Rumors said the Sun King had pulled Aphelion’s support after Serce had
refused to bond with Atlas. Now Heart lay without allies, save Alluvion and
Tor, while further reports said Celestria had claimed neutrality. Their
position in the furthest reaches of the north, where only the Sky Fae could
survive for more than a few days, meant they rarely dirtied their hands with
the sticky affairs of political maneuvering.
Cloris had been putting up a fuss since they’d locked her in her room,
threatening them with every curse under Zerra. It was a mark to their
advantage the priestess lived alone and kept mostly to herself. Serce was
counting on it being a while before anyone noticed she was missing.
They’d suppressed her magic with a pair of arcturite cuffs forged in the
smiths of Tor, so she couldn’t do much harm, but the incessant screaming
and wailing was giving Serce a pounding headache. More than once, she’d
considered having the priestess’s tongue cut out just to shut her the fuck up.
The only thing currently staying her hand was the fact they’d need Cloris
to perform the binding ritual. For now, Cloris could shriek to her heart’s
content, but her fate was sealed.
Finally, it was the morning of their departure.
Serce stood in front of the mirror in Wolf’s bedroom, her tunic pulled up
to study the swell of her stomach, which was just starting to show. She’d
already had to get her leggings taken out so the waistband would stop
pinching her skin.
“Gods, you’re beautiful,” Wolf said, entering from the bathroom. “You’re
glowing. Pregnancy suits you.”
Her answering grin was crooked. At first, she’d been worried about what
a baby would do to her body. Would Wolf still love her when she looked
like she’d swallowed a melon? But she swore he fell more in love with her
every day.
He came over to where she stood, wrapping his arms around her and
sliding his hands along her bare stomach. She shivered at his warm touch
before leaning into him, tipping her head back so he could press his mouth
to the side of her throat.
He moaned in approval, drawing her closer, grinding his already-hard
cock against her ass. She loved that they could never get enough of each
other.
He bit her earlobe gently. “You look so fucking gorgeous right now it
would be a shame not to do something about it.”
He pulled up and looked into her eyes in the mirror, running the backs of
his fingers over her cheek, lust reflecting in both their eyes. Tipping her
face back, he kissed her, his tongue probing her mouth, before she spun
around, her arms slipping up his neck.
“We have no time,” she whispered. “We have to go.”
“We have time,” he replied smoothly as he directed her hand under the
waistband of his breeches. Her fingers curled around his thick cock, and he
groaned as she gripped him, pumping her hand slowly.
“Fuck, Serce. You undo me. You are my star, my moon, my heart. I want
to love you and fuck you and cherish you for every day of my life. And
even when I’m wandering the Evanescence, I’ll still long for the taste of
your mouth and your sweet pussy.”
“Wolf,” she moaned as his hand slid between her legs, his palm grinding
against her as he directed her towards a table.
“Turn around,” he ordered. He shoved down her waistband with one
hand, the other gripping the back of her neck as he bent her forward,
pushing her cheek to the wood. She felt him moving behind her and then
the wide head of his cock pressing against her soaked and aching core.
He gave her no warning as he thrust inside roughly. She cried out,
gripping the table as shocks of pleasure sparked through her blood. Her
palms squeaked against the surface as he fucked her, his strong fingers
digging into her hips so firmly it would leave bruises later.
She was already getting close, her body clenching around him before she
pressed back, wanting more. Wanting all of him. He responded by pulling
all the way out and then shoving back in to the hilt, her cries echoing in the
room every time his body collided with hers.
“You’re never going to leave me,” he grunted, thrusting into her, his cock
filling her inch by glorious inch.
“Never, Wolf. I’m yours forever.”
“I’ll never let you go,” he groaned, pounding with a force that bordered
on violent.
“Always, Wolf. No matter what happens. From now until the
Evanescence claims us.”
He fisted her hair and pulled her upright so her back was flush to his
chest before he sunk his teeth into her throat. The sharp sting of pain caused
her stomach to tighten. He thrust again as she teetered on the edge, his hand
reaching around to stroke her clit before she came apart with a blinding
gasp. Wolf followed close behind with a deep moan that shuddered straight
through her limbs.
“I told you we had enough time,” he said, pulling up her leggings and
then tucking himself back in. With a wink, he grabbed her hand. “Let’s go.
They’ll be waiting for us.”
It would take them about five to six weeks to get to Heart with the whole
of Wolf’s army in tow. She wished they could move things along faster, but
they couldn’t arrive empty-handed. She had no idea what her mother had
planned and Serce would not go into this battle unprepared.
The journey from Heart was mostly smooth and uneventful, though travel
was slower than they had anticipated thanks to patches of boggy ground
through the Cinta Wilds. But when the walls of Heart came into view, Serce
felt a familiar stirring in her chest. She’d never been away from home for
this long and never felt quite right unless she was within its walls.
They left the bulk of Wolf’s army on the outskirts of the queendom.
While she did want her mother to appreciate their show of strength, even
Serce understood that getting what she wanted would mean a rockier path if
she arrived as the aggressor.
“She’s going to want to make sure you’re still under her control,” Wolf
said from his horse as it walked next to hers. “That you aren’t planning to
turn on her.”
She nodded as she stared at the Heart Castle that stretched into the sky.
The sight of it would never fail to move her. It was her spirit and her soul.
Made of snowy white stone, the spires were cloaked in thick luxurious
twists of vines garlanded with bursts of scarlet roses, making it look like a
bouquet. The scent of flowers lingered in the air, the gentle perfume
enveloping her in its familiar embrace.
She let out a deep sigh and rubbed her stomach that grew rounder with
each passing day. The other night, they’d felt the baby kick and Wolf had
been so moved he’d broken down into tears of joy.
She still wasn’t entirely sure if motherhood would suit her, but she was
becoming more confident. With Wolf at her side, hopefully they could pass
for adequate parents. She hadn’t benefited from an ideal role model, but she
vowed to do better.
As if sensing her apprehension, Wolf reached over and held out his hand.
She reached back, squeezing it and exhaling another leaded sigh.
They approached the city walls, also made of white stone, where more
rose vines clamored over the surface. Serce noticed the permanent line
between Wolf’s eyebrows and wondered what was concerning him the
most. Her mother? The baby?
Cloris was back with the army, locked in a wagon. She’d screeched for
days on end, demanding to be released until they’d finally gagged her.
Serce wasn’t sure why they hadn’t just done so from the beginning.
Wolf carried the Woodlands Staff on his saddle, cleverly disguised to
look like a bow. Hidden in plain sight, he’d said, and it made sense to keep
it secret for now. Her mother would be immediately suspicious if she
noticed they’d arrived with the Staff in tow.
Thankfully, it blended in more easily than many of the Artefacts. Imagine
having to cart around Aphelion’s giant Mirror? The Stone of Tor was at
least twice her height and buried deep in the surface of a mountain.
They trotted through the gates, no one barring their way as they
progressed to the city. The citizens recognized her instantly, their heads
bending low to honor her arrival. Serce tipped her chin in response, and
before long, they approached the castle gates. Guards flanked each side, but
no one made any move to impede their progress. Serce hoped this meant
her mother’s temperament was somewhat amicable.
A large fountain sat in the center of the courtyard, cascades of water
flowing over the white stone. She’d loved playing in it when she was a
child, much to the horror of her governess. She rubbed her stomach again,
picturing her own children kicking up water with their tiny bare feet. No
matter what kind of mother she was, she wouldn’t be the sort that prevented
them from having fun. All she’d ever been told was “no, that isn’t fitting
behavior for a princess.” As if princesses couldn’t be children, too.
Wolf was watching her as they made their way across the courtyard. She
offered him a reassuring, if tight, smile to let him know she was okay.
They brought their horses to a halt at the entrance and Serce slid off her
saddle. She wondered how much longer she’d be able to do so with the
same ease before her stomach made it too cumbersome.
She arranged her cloak around her shoulders to hide the bump just visible
through her tunic. She wanted to save this news until she understood what
they were up against. Wolf had also dismounted, along with the rest of their
small retinue.
The queen’s chief advisor waited at the castle entrance, her thin hands
clasped at her waist. Hemanthes wore a fine gown of pale green, her hair
pulled to the top of her head where it sat coiled in a nest of tight braids. Her
thin lips pressed together as she regarded Serce. They’d never seen eye to
eye on anything, and Serce couldn’t wait to replace her someday. A fact
they both knew.
“Your Highness,” Hemanthes said with a dip of her chin, the honorific
uttered in a tone that bordered on insolent.
“Hemanthes,” Serce replied, keeping her posture erect and refusing to
reciprocate the gesture. Serce would always outrank Hemanthes, and this
they both knew, too.
Hemanthes then turned to Wolf. “Your Majesty. What an honor it is to
have you both back with us. Heart hasn’t been the same without you here,
Serce.”
Serce arched an eyebrow, interpreting the hidden meaning in those
words. “You’re too kind, Hemanthes. Where is my mother?”
“She’s currently indisposed,” Hemanthes said, her tone gleeful, as though
she was relishing the chance to make Serce wait.
“I’d like to see her. Now.”
“That won’t be possible. Perhaps you can clean up first, and she’ll be
available later this evening.”
Another smug smile accompanied a feigned deferential tip of her head
before she turned to Wolf. “I’ll have someone show you to your chambers.”
“He’s staying with me,” she said before Wolf could reply. “In my wing.”
Hemanthes lifted her chin, peering down her nose.
“Petulance isn’t a good look for you, Hemanthes. You all need to get over
it. Wolf is my mate, and no one can come between us.”
At that, Hemanthes’s eyes widened, her gaze passing between Serce and
Wolf. Serce smirked, enjoying the triumph of catching her off-guard.
They’d already decided they would tell her mother to head off any further
discussion regarding the alliance with Atlas. Not even the Queen of Heart
could overrule a mate bond.
“Is it true?” she asked, now a little breathless. “A real mate?”
“Yes, we realized it shortly after we arrived in The Woodlands.”
Wolf was watching her, his expression a mix of pride and barely
concealed desire. Maybe going to their room for a few hours wasn’t the
worst idea. All these weeks on the road, surrounded by soldiers and his
advisors, had put a serious damper on their alone time. But she had things
to accomplish first.
“I want to see the queen now,” Serce said, finally losing her patience. She
didn’t wait for Hemanthes to reply, grabbing Wolf’s hand and skirting past
her. They stormed down the wide central hallway towards the queen’s
private council chamber.
“Serce!” Hemanthes called after them. “Come back here!”
Serce stopped, sucking in an angry breath, and whipped around, pinning
Hemanthes with a glare.
“It’s Your Highness, Hemanthes. You will address me as my station
demands, or risk finding yourself comfortable with the rats in the
dungeons.”
Hemanthes’s features pinched together, and her throat bobbed sharply as
she swallowed her indignation.
“Your Highness,” she ground out, but Serce ignored her, turning away
and continuing her quest to locate her mother.
Wolf marched next to Serce, tossing her a grin. “Do you know how
beautiful you are when you’re ferocious?” he asked in a low, rumbling
voice. “Perhaps we should visit your rooms for a few hours first?” She
smiled at the echo of her own thoughts, gripping his hand tighter.
“There will be time for that later. I promise,” she said, and he smiled.
They arrived at the doors to her mother’s wing, and Serce ignored the
stationed guards, passing by without a glance. Though she was glad she
didn’t have to kill them for blocking her way, they really should be tossed
into the stocks for allowing her to enter unchallenged.
She swung open the door as a dozen surprised faces turned her way.
“Serce,” Daedra said grimly, clearly not surprised by her daughter’s
intrusion or arrival. “It’s nice to see you.”
“I’d like to speak with you,” Serce said.
“Of course.” The queen pressed her hands to the table before she rose.
Her shoulders were tight and her eyes drooped. Serce imagined the queen
hadn’t slept much since she’d disrupted her plans, and a twinge of guilt
threaded through her chest.
Nevertheless, her mother was still regal in a long white dress that flowed
to the floor. The Heart Crown adorned her head, matching the large ruby
necklace at her throat, marking her as queen of this territory. Serce
wondered briefly if the queen had chosen these symbols for her benefit.
Had she known they were coming today?
As Serce stepped forward, a tall Fae with short grey hair and a hawkish
nose stood, a note of annoyance in her tone. “Serce, when will you learn
you can’t just barge in here and demand to see your mother?”
“Never.” She shrugged. “Everyone out. This is a family matter.”
A few muttered under their breaths as they obeyed her order, and
Hemanthes, who followed in their wake, was the last to leave, shooting
Serce a look of pure unfiltered hatred. Serce didn’t care. Soon, she’d be
queen of this place and get rid of them all.
“Serce,” her mother said, turning her way after everyone had left. The
queen looked at Wolf and tipped her chin. “Wolf. Welcome back. What can
I do for you both?”
She appeared so calm that Serce wondered if the last months had even
happened, but Serce also understood her mother was very good at playing
games.
“What can you do for us?” Serce asked, her tone cold. “Rumors have
reached me that you no longer intend to descend as we’d planned.”
Her mother clasped her hands and flattened her mouth. “Is that why
you’ve arrived on my doorstep with an entire army?”
“You don’t deny it?”
“I don’t deny or confirm anything. But there was no need to bring these
soldiers into our home.”
Serce stepped closer, trailing her fingers along the smooth wood of the
council table.
“They can be sent back to The Woodlands when I have your reassurances
that my crown is no longer under threat.”
“You still refuse to bond with Atlas?”
Serce resisted every urge to roll her eyes. “Mother, please move past it.
Wolf is my mate. The union with Atlas was doomed from the start.”
The queen’s jaw dropped, her eyes widening. It was the exact reaction
Serce had been hoping for. “Your mate? You’re sure?”
“Of course I’m sure, Mother. If you’d experienced it, you would
understand it’s not a feeling you can mistake.”
It was a low blow. To find a true mate was as rare as unearthing a
polished diamond. She was incredibly fortunate to have been bestowed with
this gift from Zerra, and she should give it all the reverence it was due.
The queen’s eyebrows drew together. “I’m happy for you, my daughter.”
There was only sincerity in her voice, which took Serce by surprise.
“You are?”
“Of course I am. To find a true mate is a rare gift. I only want you to be
happy, Serce. Despite everything, I’m still your mother and I only want the
best for you.”
“Okay,” she said, as Wolf came to stand behind her.
Daedra turned to him then. “I suppose a welcome to the family is in
order. I’m sorry we got off on the wrong foot.”
Wolf, ever the idealist with a warrior’s heart of gold, grinned wide and
swept the queen in his arms, swinging her around in a big hug. Daedra let
out an undignified screech, and Serce covered her giggle with her hand.
“Put me down!” the queen demanded with laughter as she pounded her
fists against his shoulders. Wolf obeyed with a grin that warmed the entire
room, and the queen pushed him with a good-natured shove.
“I suppose I can see what drew you to this one,” she said with a roll of
her eyes.
“He’s something,” Serce agreed before Wolf looked at her with such love
in his expression it took her breath away.
The queen smoothed down her hair and dress, trying to regain her
composure. “We still need to convince Aphelion to offer their armies, but I
suppose we’ll now have to discuss other methods in earnest.”
“That is what I was saying all along,” Serce replied carefully, wondering
if this was a trap. This seemed too easy. She noticed her mother still hadn’t
denied the question of her descension. Serce would let it lie for now, but
vowed to bring it up later.
“Yes. I see that now. I’ll send a letter to the Sun Palace. Perhaps Kyros is
willing to meet again.” Daedra’s eyes narrowed, her gaze falling on Wolf.
“What about your sister?”
“My sister?”
“She’s unbonded, is she not?”
“She is. She’s been in Alluvion for the past year, studying at Maris
Academy.”
“With The Woodlands now firmly aligned with Heart, perhaps the Sun
King can be persuaded that a match with your sister would be nearly as
advantageous. In fact, he’ll get two realms instead of just one.”
“It’s an idea,” Serce said, looping her arm through Wolf’s, cautious about
how quickly this plan had materialized. His expression was thoughtful as he
nodded. She wanted to warn him not to agree to anything, but he was
smarter than that.
“It could work,” he said. “We can consider it. I’d need to send her a
message and see how she’d feel about it.”
“Wonderful.” Her mother clapped her hands. “Then I’ll send word to
Aphelion immediately. While we wait, we can get to know one another
properly. You must be tired from traveling. Why don’t you rest for a few
hours and we’ll have dinner together?”
“Okay,” Serce said. “Thank you, Mother.”
Daedra smiled. “Of course. I’m so glad you’re home.”
They said their goodbyes and exited the chamber, heading towards
Serce’s wing of the castle. Once they were out of earshot, she turned to her
mate.
“That seemed too easy.”
“It did,” Wolf agreed. “What are you thinking?”
“Send word to your army to retreat. Just enough that my mother thinks
they’ve left. They’ll need to hide somewhere.”
“I’ll do that right away.”
“She can’t know about Cloris. She must remain hidden.”
Wolf took her hand, pressing his mouth to the center of her palm. “Don’t
worry. Our plans are still in motion. This changes nothing, and my sister
isn’t a pawn to be used in your mother’s games.”
“No, she’s not,” she agreed. “But we’ll play my mother’s games if that’s
what she wants. We’ll just have to make sure we’re playing them smarter.”
Chapter Forty-one

Lor

N adir lands us gently on the ground, the landscape barren, a scar


scratched into the earth. There’s nothing but decay and the shattered
remains of the place that should have been my home. It spreads in every
direction. The colorless void of heartbreak. My chest wrenches tight, the air
thick and sluggish. I’m not sure I’m ready for this.
What made me think I could just walk in here and not feel everything
with the crushing weight of being buried under a mountain?
“Are you okay?” Nadir asks, his voice gruff.
I nod, unable to find the words to speak. I’m not, but we’re here now, and
I have to see this through. Not just for myself, but for Tristan and Willow
and every person in the settlements waiting for their lives to begin again.
I didn’t start this, but I have to be the one who ends it. Somehow.
Attempting to calm the racing beat of my heart, I take stock of my
surroundings. We’re standing near what once was a city wall, crumbled
stones littering the ground. It curves gently, disappearing into the distance.
It’s colder than I expected and my breath fogs in the air. It’s like we’ve
stepped into another world that is literally frozen in time. I flex my fingers,
attempting to rouse the flow of my blood when the invisible blanket of
Nadir’s magic wraps around me, warming my chilled limbs.
“Thank you,” I whisper, and he nods before approaching me.
“I know this must feel big and terrifying, but I want to help you. I won’t
let you come to any harm.”
“I’m scared,” I say, deciding there’s no point in denying it. I don’t know
if I’ve ever been more afraid in my life.
“You’re allowed to be scared. No one expects you to be strong all the
time. I think maybe you believe you have to.”
Those earnest words catch me off-guard, and I hesitate, studying him
carefully. It’s like he can see straight through to the darkest parts of my
soul. Like he can read all of my thoughts. Everything shifts and my magic
lurches towards him with such force it nearly knocks me over. I roll my
neck, willing it to behave. It will not have him.
Peering into the distance, my gaze follows a line of jagged spires
shrouded in mist.
“Are you ready to go?” Nadir asks, and I allow him to take my hand and
lead me into what’s left of the city. Broken-down buildings surround us, the
cobbles that once lined the streets shattered, impeding our steps. As I kick a
chunk of stone, it goes skittering across the ground, the echo so loud it
seems to make the very atmosphere shiver.
We both stop moving, our breaths held as though we’re both expecting
something to leap out from the shadows. It feels like eyes are watching us,
though there is no sign of life. Our gazes meet and then pull away before
we silently agree to keep moving. Still holding on to my hand, Nadir leads
me closer to the castle.
As we approach, the weight on my shoulders sits heavier and heavier.
Based on what’s left of the structure, I surmise it must have been a sight to
behold.
“Were you ever here when it was whole?” I ask softly.
“No. I was only a baby when everything happened.”
I try to imagine what this fierce Fae prince must’ve been like as a small
boy. It’s hard to imagine he was ever full of smiles and giggles. But when I
think of what he told me about his father, I decide there probably wasn’t
much for him to smile about.
“How old are you, anyway?”
He looks back at me with an eyebrow arched. “Two hundred and eighty-
six. Practically a baby by Fae standards.”
I huff out a laugh, appreciating his attempt at a joke. Tristan and I have
discussed the implications if I can’t shift back into my High Fae body. We
don’t know enough about the magic to understand if I’d be bound to a
human lifespan or that of a Fae. It’s just another reason I need to find that
Crown.
“It must have been beautiful,” I say as we approach the wall that
surrounds the castle.
“It must have been,” he agrees.
We pause at the wall, surveying the castle, rising up like a specter. From
the corner of my eye, I notice a flash of color amidst the dull gloom. A
bright red rose blooms on a green vine growing up the side of the wall.
It seems to call me, and I walk over with Nadir keeping close behind. As
I stare at it, a strange tingling creeps over my scalp.
“Why is this here?” I look down the wall, noting more bursts of color
where other flowers bloom. “How can anything be growing here?”
Nadir takes in a deep breath. “It just started happening.”
“How do you know that?”
“Because I’ve come here before. Everything has been dead and gone for
as long as I can remember. But a few months ago, I sent Mael to scout
things out to ensure everything was still quiet, and he brought me back the
head of a single red rose.”
My brows draw together. “A few months ago?”
“Right around the time you were taken from Nostraza.”
I sit with the implication of those words.
“Is that how you knew? Who I was?”
“I was starting to put things together and when Mael brought the rose,
something in me just knew. He thought I was crazy. So did Amya. But they
humored me into facilitating your…release.”
“Kidnapping,” I amend dryly.
“Semantics,” Nadir counters. “Anyway, they agreed to go along with my
hunch until we could prove who you were either way.”
“And if I’d turned out to be just a human woman from Nostraza?”
Nadir rolls his neck and then bites his bottom lip.
“You would have killed me,” I say.
“If you’d been nobody, then you would have been a loose end I had to
take care of.”
I spit out a derisive laugh. “You always know how to make me feel
special, Nadir.”
He lets out a low growl and steps towards me so quickly my back hits the
wall. He presses a hand next to my head and leans in, his face just inches
from mine.
“I knew you were special, Lor. I felt it the moment I met you at the Sun
Queen ball. You know, when you threw yourself at me.”
My mouth drops open, and I make a sound of indignation. “I didn’t throw
myself at you. I got in your way because I had a Trial to win, and you were
a means to an end. Don’t flatter yourself.”
He smirks and pulls away. “Keep telling yourself that, Heart Queen. Your
hands were all over me.”
“In your dreams.”
He smiles and plucks the rose from the wall, handing it to me.
I take it, rubbing the petals between my thumb and finger, its texture like
velvet. I press it to my nose and inhale its delicate scent. Roses. The
memory of the soap that Jude stole from me all those months ago surfaces.
The same bar of soap that landed me in the Hollow. I’d been so desperate
for that small bit of luxury, I’d lost control of myself.
“What do they mean?” I ask Nadir, lifting the flower in my hand.
He presses his lips together. “I think it means your legacy is waiting for
you.”
I cast my gaze to the ruined castle and then back to him. “You really
think that?”
“It has to mean something they decided to bloom the day you were freed
from Nostraza.”
“This feels like a lot of pressure.”
He nods sagely. “That’s a feeling I understand. At least somewhat.”
We cross the length of the ruined courtyard, passing a large fountain, the
basin cracked and dry. I try to imagine what it might have looked like
flowing with water and surrounded by the denizens of this castle. Or what
my grandmother looked like striding this very path.
The doors to the castle are long gone, and the entrance sits open, the dark
opening reminding me of a missing tooth in a smile. The stone is a soft grey
that might have been white at some point in its history. Here, more green
vines snake up, twining with ropes of deadened brown tendrils that must’ve
once grown in abundance. Bright red roses dot their length and maybe
Nadir is right, because I swear I can hear their whispers on the wind
welcoming me home.
We cross the doorway, passing down a dim hallway, our steps kicking up
dust and small bits of stone. The only sound is the echo of our footsteps
against dulled patterned tiles that would have been glorious in their day. Up
ahead, a large archway leads to a room bright with sunlight. We head
towards it and step through, finding ourselves in a massive room, the
ceiling soaring high above our heads.
Blood-red roses trail from floor to ceiling, crawling up the stone walls.
Here the blooms are bursting in a thick carpet of velvety red, and I see the
shock on Nadir’s face before he turns to look at me, his gaze sweeping me
from head to toe as if he’s seeing me for the first time. The air is sweet and
fresh, and I inhale deeply, overcome with an emotion for which I have no
name.
Suddenly I feel robbed of so many things. I’ve tried to never mourn the
existence that was taken from us, knowing it would do no good to dwell on
a past I couldn’t change. But right now, that knowledge squats on my chest
like an anvil.
“We were happy,” I say, unable to hold the words inside. “Living in the
forest, the five of us. We were always happy, and our lives would have been
fine. I never truly longed for any of this. It wasn’t until my parents were
taken, and the three of us were forced to grow up in ways none of us were
ready for that I began to yearn for any of it.”
Nadir is watching me as I talk. I’m not really saying these things to him,
but I need the words to exist, even if no one else ever hears them.
“I’m sorry,” Nadir says. “I couldn’t have stopped it, even if I’d known,
but I’m sorry this was the hand you were dealt. Your grandmother let you
down, and my father ruined your life for his own ends.”
I say nothing as I take a step deeper into the room with the rose clutched
to my chest. At the far end is a raised dais with a pair of thrones made of
black stone. An empty hole sits in the back of each one.
It’s then I notice it. My magic is a constant swirl under my skin, and its
presence has become as natural as breathing, especially when Nadir is
around. But now it’s edged in something different, giving it a sharpness and
clarity like a sliver of splintered crystal.
I spin around, taking in every corner of the room and the ceiling that
opens to the sky.
“What is it?” Nadir asks, also casting his gaze about the room, his stance
ready as if waiting for an attack. “Is someone here?”
I shake my head. “No. I don’t think so.”
“Then what is it?”
“I think…I can feel it.”
“Feel it?”
“The Crown. I think I can feel the Crown.”
Chapter Forty-two

“W here?” he asks, coming closer and scanning the room as though


it might suddenly appear hovering in the air.
“I’m not sure,” I say, spinning around again, trying to discern if it’s
leading me in a specific direction. “It just feels like it’s everywhere.”
“Well, that’s better than nothing, I suppose.” He looks at me. “What do
you feel?”
“It’s hard to describe, but it’s like there’s another layer of magic
alongside the one I usually feel.”
His nostrils flare as he looks around the room again. “Then we better
start searching.”
“This place is huge.”
“It is,” he agrees. “And I don’t know how much time we have before my
father decides this is where you’ve run to.”
“Fuck,” I say, just needing to expel the pressure building in my chest.
Nadir chuckles softly next to me, his hand landing gently on the small of
my back. I jerk away at his touch, and his features harden before he
smooths them down.
“Sorry.”
“It’s fine. I meant what I said about us.”
“So you’ve made clear.” He turns away and starts walking, his long
strides carrying him across the room.
“Where are you going?”
“We won’t find the Crown standing here, will we, Inmate?”
I let out a low growl.
“Don’t call me that,” I say, hurrying after him.
We spend the next few hours wandering the crumbling corridors of the
Heart Castle, stepping over detritus, broken furniture, and crumbling mortar
and stones. Most of the windows are long gone, letting in the cool breeze.
We wander past enormous bedrooms, finding shattered beds and moldy
sheets, so rotted they crumble at the barest touch. There are black scorch
marks along the walls, ceilings, and floors, and I swallow down a sting of
pain, imagining the violence of the force that must have caused them.
We step through a wide opening that must have been a set of double
doors once. Large arched windows and broken shelves line a library where
the remnants of rotting and torn books are heaped into haphazard piles. I
enter slowly, walking the perimeter, running my hands along the dry wood.
I wonder what it would have been like to grow up with a library like this
instead of making do with Nostraza’s single rickety shelf, where I’d have to
hope something worth reading would appear.
My breath catches as I turn to find two massive portraits hanging on
either side of the doorway running nearly the height of the wall. The colors
are faded and their bottom halves scorched black, but their faces are clear
enough to make out the male and female High Fae depicted in each. I
approach the one nearest to me. The female wears a long red dress with her
shoulders left bare. Her black hair is swept up on her head, the ends
cascading in a fall of thick curls down her back. She wears a silver crown
with a single red jewel set in the center.
Instinctively, my hand goes to the locket around my neck and the sliver
of stone nestled inside.
“She looks just like Willow,” I say. “They could be twins.”
“She was beautiful,” Nadir says.
“She was.” I study my grandmother—the woman who is responsible for
everything.
Nadir is standing behind me, so close we’re nearly touching, and I look
up at him for a brief second before I walk past to the second portrait, which
must be my grandfather.
He’s incredibly handsome, with long brown hair braided and pulled back
from his face. Even with the faded paint, I make out the intensity of his dark
green eyes.
“Wolf, the king of The Woodlands,” I say, softly. I wonder what kind of
grandparents they would have been. His eyes are kind though, and I
imagine being wrapped in his arms as a little girl. “I wish I could have met
them.”
“I’m sure they wish the same,” Nadir says, staring at the portrait of my
grandfather.
“We should keep looking.” I head for the exit, suddenly not wanting to be
in here anymore. This is all too much.
“Are you okay?” Nadir asks, catching up to me.
“Yes. I’m fine. We haven’t looked down here yet.”
He doesn’t pressure me any further, and for that, I’m grateful as we
continue searching. I keep checking in with that same feeling that I’m sure
is pulling me towards the Crown, but it never changes. I was hoping it
would become more intense or noticeable when we were nearer to the
Artefact, but it remains frustratingly consistent.
As night descends, Nadir aids our search with a ball of yellow light he
casts over our heads that illuminates the darkening castle.
“I don’t get it,” I say after we’ve finished searching another wing. “It
never wavers. It’s just the same buzz.”
“Maybe it isn’t the Crown you’re feeling.”
The thought had occurred to me, too. Maybe I’ve just convinced myself I
feel something because I want it to be true so much.
He approaches me and raises a hand to touch my cheek, his hand
snapping together into a fist at the last moment before he lets it drop. I try to
ignore my twinge of disappointment. He’s honoring my wishes, and I
should be happy about that. My stomach rumbles, and I look outside,
noticing the sun has set.
“We’ve been at this for hours,” Nadir says, following my gaze. “Let’s get
something to eat.”
I nod and follow him back to the center of the castle where we first
entered. Nadir finds the pack he left there and starts unloading it. He has a
small tent and two sleeping bags set up before long.
“I hope this is okay. I only had room for one tent,” he says.
“We’ve been sharing a bed for weeks. I think we’ll be fine.”
“This is a little more…confined.”
I look at the tiny tent and then at him. His broad shoulders will probably
take up most of the space. Anticipation runs down my spine, but I dismiss
it. I’m done with him.
“What’s for dinner?” I ask, wanting to change the subject. We’ll deal
with the matter of the tiny tent later.
“Let’s get a fire going. You think your ancestors will mind if we use the
floor in here?”
I look around, wondering if their ghosts are watching over us right now.
“Technically, I’m queen of this dump, and I’ll allow it.”
Nadir smiles and then winks. “Then let’s go find some wood.”
We head into the forest, and an hour later we have a merrily crackling
fire surrounded by a ring of stones. Nadir puts together a stew with thick,
rich gravy, fresh tender peas, and chunks of venison.
“You can cook,” I say.
“Is that a statement or a question?”
I shrug. “I didn’t think princes did things like cook for themselves.”
Nadir smirks and takes a bite of his stew. “When you’re in the army,
everyone has to chip in. You learn pretty quickly how to keep up, lest you
be ostracized.”
“Don’t tell me you’ve ever cared what anyone thought about you.”
He arches a dark brow. “When they sleep next to you, it’s best to keep on
their good side. Otherwise, you end up with a missing bedroll, your
eyebrows shaved, or all your clothes tossed in the river.”
I snort and cover my mouth, laughing. “Okay, that makes sense.” I take a
sip from the canteen we’re sharing and wipe my mouth. “When were you in
the army?”
“Do you know about the wars your grandmother started?”
A knot twists in my stomach, and I nod. “A little. My mother said it went
on for a long time.”
“The first lasted only a few years,” Nadir says. “The fall of Heart left a
vacancy of power that everyone leaped to snatch for themselves, especially
when magic was no longer a part of the equation. In a strange way, it
leveled the playing field, leaving a bloody and brutal battle where no one
knew how to win.”
“Then what?”
“Then a couple of decades later, when everyone’s magic started
returning, the fighting broke out again. This one went on for years. It was
slower, but equally destructive. The problem has always been that the realm
itself seems to resist any attempts at being conquered.”
I frown. “What does that mean?”
He shakes his head. “It’s hard to explain. But every time one side would
gain an advantage, it was like Zerra herself stepped in to take it away.”
He stops, as though considering his words for a moment. “By the time
the second war started, I was a fully grown Fae and had no choice but to
join the front lines next to my father. In the end, there truly were no victors.
No one could maintain the upper hand for long enough for it to matter, and
finally, we called a truce, abandoning this place and agreeing to let it lie
forever.”
“Until your father found us and thought he could use me. And then Atlas
tried to do the same.” I shake my head, realizing how much of a pawn I’ve
been in their schemes.
“Yes,” Nadir says. “Forever is a long time, I guess.”
“Was it terrible? The war?”
“Of course. It was a war. The things I saw. The numbers of Fae, both
High and low, and humans who died, were countless. So many we lost
track. We all did things we aren’t proud of.”
I stare into my bowl, gripping it between my hands. “Why did she do it?
My grandmother. Why did she cause all this?”
Nadir shakes his head. “I don’t know that. I’m not sure she could have
known the true extent of the fallout her actions would cause.”
“I suppose not.”
The sky is fully dark now as we sit in the flicker of the campfire flames.
“Sometimes I worry that I’m going to mess this up, too.” I’m not sure
why I’m allowing myself to be vulnerable with Nadir, but something about
his presence always gives me the freedom to just let go. Like no matter
what dark secret I tell him, he will never judge me for it.
“I can understand that,” comes his reply. He shifts and his arm presses
against mine. As he’s about to move again, I grab his elbow and hold him in
place.
“It’s okay.”
His shoulders drop, and his face relaxes. “I think all you can do is to be
aware of the choices you’re making,” he says. “I can’t know what was in
your grandmother’s head or what caused her fall, but the fact that you’re
even thinking about it means you have the chance to do better.”
I consider that, grateful he isn’t telling me not to worry or that it won’t
happen.
“I’m not sure what better even means.” I sweep a hand out to encompass
the destruction surrounding us. “Why do I think this even needs to happen?
Ouranos is operating just fine without Heart. What if the very act of my
being here spoils everything? What if this is how things should remain and
I’m just going to upset the balance in favor of even more ruin?”
Ruin.
The words from the Aurora Torch flit through my head, but when it said
“ruin” it had been referring specifically to Nadir. Right?
He angles his body towards me.
“I don’t think it’s actually a decision you get to make. All this was set in
motion when Atlas stole you from my father. Hell, it started when my father
took you from the woods all those years ago. Power can only grow in a
vacuum and while Heart has sat here quietly for more than two centuries,
eventually someone would come here and claim it.
“The Mirror told you to find the Crown. It did that for a reason. It must
understand something yet to be revealed.” He then looks away, his gaze
wandering towards the open forest beyond the city walls. “And you still
have people who are waiting. Many who were alive when this was their
home, and some who weren’t who’ve never truly had one. You’re not just
doing this for yourself, you’re doing it for them, too.”
He stares at me with such ferocious intensity the inside of my stomach
twists.
“Thank you. I needed to hear that.”
The corner of his mouth quirks up. “Anytime, Heart Queen.” He moves
to stand. “We should get some sleep. We have a lot more ground to cover.”
We both stare at the small tent, an awkwardness blooming between us.
We’ve already crossed so many barriers of intimacy, but I drew a line in the
sand when we left The Aurora, and it’s tipped everything on its side.
“I’ll sleep out here. It’s been a while since I’ve enjoyed the sight of the
stars.”
He doesn’t give me a chance to respond before he stalks over to the tent
and drags his bedroll and sleeping bag out. I drop to my hands and knees
and crawl into the small structure, lying on my back and staring at the
canvas ceiling. I hear Nadir shifting outside, getting himself set up, and a
few moments later, silence settles in the air. Everything is much too quiet,
and suddenly, I’ve never felt so alone in my entire life.
Not giving myself a chance to second-guess this decision, I get up and
drag my own bedroll out of the tent, placing it next to Nadir’s. He watches
me, one hand tucked behind his head, the other resting on the ground at his
side. I settle onto my pillow and look up at the hole in the ceiling,
marveling at the sparkling blanket of stars in the sky.
“It’s so beautiful,” I whisper.
“It is,” he confirms. Then, I do second-guess myself. I shouldn’t have
come out here. I’m sending him mixed signals, but my own head is so
mixed up I don’t know how to do it any other way.
“We should get some sleep,” I say, but it sounds like a feeble kind of
protest. “I have a hard time sleeping alone,” I add, feeling the need to
explain my presence at his side. “I slept for so many years surrounded by
people, and I don’t know how to do it alone. I hated it in Aphelion.”
“I understand. Go to sleep, Lor.”
His eyes flicker in the darkness, swirling with violet and green, and I
don’t know what makes me do it, but I reach out and touch his hand. There
is no hesitation before he moves his own and threads his fingers through
mine before we drift off to sleep.
Chapter Forty-three

W e spend the next day searching every room and hallway and nook
of the castle. That constant buzz, that incessant feeling, remains as
steady as the moment we arrived. I’m ready to tear my hair out in
frustration.
“I don’t know,” I finally cry out after we’ve cleared yet another wing.
We’re back in the throne room, the fire burning. I pace while Nadir warms
up the leftover soup from yesterday. “It never changes. Maybe I’m wrong
and this means something else. Maybe it was always there, and I just
convinced myself it was different.”
“We’ll keep searching tomorrow,” Nadir says. “There are still places to
look.”
“And if we still don’t find it? How much longer can we stay here before
your father finds us?”
“If we still don’t find it, we move to the next idea.”
“And that is?” I ask, raising my brows.
He stirs the pot, testing the heat of the stew. “I haven’t quite figured that
out yet.”
I huff and lean against the pillar, crossing my arms.
“Where else could it be? Who might know?”
Nadir ladles soup into a bowl and passes it to me, our fingers brushing.
We haven’t acknowledged the fact that I left the tent to sleep next to him
last night after telling him I wanted to keep my distance. The touch sends
sparks up my arm, making my heart thump too hard in my chest. I need to
get away from him. His nearness is overwhelming, and I feel like I’m going
to crack at any moment. He spoons out his own bowl, and I walk over to sit
down next to him.
“What about the Woodlands Staff?” he asks. “If the Mirror and Torch
both spoke to you, then maybe the Staff would, too. You have Woodlands
blood flowing in your veins as well.”
“But we can’t just waltz up to Cedar and ask for it. Then that’s another
person who knows what we’re trying to do.”
“Did he know you had magic? I wonder if he knew you were the
Primary.”
I shake my head. “I have no idea. I don’t know what relationship my
parents had with him. As far as I know, he never interfered beyond seeing
my mother to safety as a baby. I’m not sure if he even knew that my
siblings and I existed.”
“He’s your family. It might be safe to tell him.”
I scoff at that. “Right, because family can always be trusted.”
Nadir’s look is grim. “Fair enough.”
We both fall silent as we eat our meal, each of us lost in our thoughts.
When I’m done, I set the bowl down and stand up, striding over to the two
thrones on the dais. I stare at them, trying to piece together the broken
fragments of my thoughts. Being here feels like we’re at the beginning of
something, and I can’t help but think that I’m already letting everyone
down.
“Go and sit in it,” Nadir says, walking up next to me, his voice soft.
“I couldn’t,” I say.
“It belongs to you, Heart Queen.”
“Not yet, it doesn’t.”
He moves closer, and I resist the urge to lean into his pull. “You don’t
need the Crown to know this is your rightful inheritance. Sit down and see
what it will feel like. Remind yourself what you’re fighting for.”
I look up at him, the irises of his eyes swirling with violet. They’re so
mesmerizing. So beautiful, I just want to stare at them all day. I want to
stare at him all day.
“Alright.” I ascend the steps and stop in front of the throne and then turn
around and sink into the seat. The fabric cover has all but rotted away and
yet, even in this empty room, I feel a shift. I imagine a future where this
castle is restored to its former glory. I imagine Tristan and Willow here with
me, each taking their place at my side. While the Crown might be mine, I
won’t rule this queendom without their guidance. This is their legacy as
much as it’s mine.
Nadir walks forward and bends on his knee, his head bowing.
“What are you doing?”
He looks up with a smirk. “Kneeling for the queen.”
“Stop that,” I say, something awkward bursting in my chest.
He grins and tips his head. “You look glorious up there.”
Enjoying his admiration way more than I should, my cheeks burn at the
compliment.
“Na—” I break off and my eyes go wide.
“What is it?” he asks.
“It changed.”
He stands up and comes closer. “It did?”
I jump up from the seat and circle around the back to a stone wall
covered with roses and vines. The buzzing in my veins has shifted, the
drone pitching lower. I press my hands to the wall, and there’s a tug from
the center of my stomach, a hook dragging me forward.
“Here. I think it’s here.” I press on the wall, but of course, it’s solid and
nothing happens.
Nadir is already running his hands over the stone. “Is there a door? A
latch or a lever?”
We both search the wall, looking for a chink or a crack or something that
might open it. After a few minutes, we come up empty-handed.
“We have to knock it down,” Nadir says, stepping back.
“How? It’s a solid stone wall.”
He tosses me a cocky grin.
“You’re traveling with the Aurora Prince, Inmate. Back up.”
I do as he says as ribbons of colorful light whip from his fingertips,
swirling into a tornado. The effect is hypnotizing as the colors move and
slide and twist against each other. Nadir takes a few steps back, pulling the
lights towards him, forming them into a massive ball. It pulses and flickers
like his own personal sun. He then lifts his hands over his head and hurls
them forward, the ball crashing into the wall and splitting apart like a drop
of water hitting the ground. Ribbons of light blast out and a crash shreds the
air. I cover my head against a shower of stone and dust.
The roar of the cracking stone is deafening as the ground shudders. After
a few seconds, everything falls silent. I cough, dust coating my mouth.
Suspended in the air, it covers my clothes and my hands and my hair.
“Are you okay?” Nadir asks, his hair and clothes also dusted in a fine
layer of white.
“I think so.” In a wry voice, I add, “That was a little dramatic.”
“I like to act with style.” He holds out his hand, and I take it. “Let’s go
see what’s there.”
We step over the debris, kicking away the stones and rocks, climbing
over the largest pieces. Behind the mess sits a round chamber, the walls
made of the same white stone as the rest of the castle. But it’s instantly
obvious it’s completely empty.
“There’s nothing here.”
Nadir presses his mouth together. “Do you still feel the change?”
I nod. “Yes, it’s pulling me in.”
“Then there has to be something here.”
We enter the room, performing the same set of moves we did on the first
wall, searching for a hidden latch or door.
“Agh!” I cry out, banging my fists against the stone. “Every time we take
one step forward, we come up on another dead end. Where is it!”
“It’s here,” Nadir says, circling the room. “It has to be.” He’s so full of
confidence that I want to believe him, but the longer we remain in this
empty chamber, the more hopeless I become.
My gaze drifts upward to an opening carved into the ceiling, letting in a
shaft of moonlight that reaches the ground, forming a small bright spot.
Blowing out my cheeks, I cross the floor and spin around, searching for the
clue I’ve missed. When I pass under the beam of light, my knees buckle.
The buzzing under my skin sparks, ricocheting through every cell and
nerve. “Nadir,” I gasp, as the sensation flares again, causing my stomach to
pull tight. “I feel something.”
He’s next to me in an instant, his arm wrapping around my waist to hold
me up. He pulls me back, and we both stare at the column of light. “But
there’s nothing there,” I say, running my hand through it and sucking in a
breath at another sharp pull in my chest. “But something is there.”
Nadir frowns, circling the beam slowly. He casts out a crimson ribbon of
magic, followed by another one of emerald and then of violet. They hit the
beam of light and bend around it, curving to accommodate an invisible
barrier. He sends out more magic, more ribbons curling, until it’s formed a
cylinder that spins slowly in the center of the room.
“What is it?” I whisper, staring up at it.
“It’s magic,” he says. “Mine can’t get through it.” He lifts his arm and
calls all his ribbons of color back, leaving an empty space again.
“I don’t understand.”
Nadir presses his mouth into a line and gives me a look that suggests he’s
about to tell me something I don’t want to hear.
“I suspect it can only be touched by Heart magic and that it’s protecting
something very important.”
“The Crown,” I breathe, staring at the empty spot.
“The Crown. Whoever or whatever created this, must have done so to
ensure only a true member of Heart could get at it.”
“So we’ll go get Tristan. Maybe he has enough magic to unlock this.”
Nadir is shaking his head. “I’d also guess it’s only the magic of the
Primary that will do it. Who else would be the rightful finder of the Heart
Crown? Besides, we don’t have time. My father is searching for us.”
“But I can’t,” I say, my chest crumpling in disappointment. “I can’t
unlock this without the Crown, and I can’t get the Crown without unlocking
this.” I place my hand over my heart, feeling the surge of magic and that
infuriating wall that’s keeping me from it.
“You can,” Nadir says, coming closer, his hand circling my elbow. “I’ll
help you.”
“But you tried, and you couldn’t.”
“So we’ll try again. Try harder. It isn’t magic you need to get at your
power, Lor. It’s you. The only one preventing you from accessing it is you.”
“That’s not true,” I hiss, tearing my arm away. “I want this more than
anyone.”
He steps in closer, his hand tipping up my chin. “I know you do, but
you’re so scared of your past. Of what will happen if anyone sees what
you’re capable of, that you’re locking yourself away.”
“Because of what your father did!” I scream, once again tearing from his
grasp. “I had to lock it away. I nearly killed myself burying it so deep so I
could protect myself and my family. He did this to me!”
“He did,” Nadir growls, moving towards me, not leaving me room to
escape. “He did that, and for that, he will fucking pay. I swear it to you, Lor.
With my every last dying breath, I will make him pay for everything he did.
But you’re not a little girl anymore and he can’t hurt you. I won’t let him
hurt you again.”
“You can’t promise that.”
“I can and I do,” he growls. “You’re mine, Lor. You might not believe it
yet, but you are, and I’m not going to let that monster touch you ever
again.”
I inhale a deep breath. “I’m not sure I know how.” Tears sting the backs
of my eyes, hoping that at least part of what he’s saying is true.
He takes my hand and pulls me towards him before turning me to face
the shaft of moonlight in the center of the room. He places an arm across
my collarbone and a hand on my stomach, pulling me tight against him.
“Breathe,” he whispers, his mouth brushing my ear. My magic flares
under my skin, and today his presence doesn’t soothe it. Today it’s wild and
feral, like it wants to reach out and snatch him, lock him up and keep him
forever. I do as he says, sensation flickering across the surface of my body
as my head tips back against his shoulder.
A moment later, bands of Nadir’s magic wrap around my legs and my
hips. It slides higher, around my waist and my chest, while my magic
stretches for his.
“Do you feel it?”
I nod, my eyes closing as he reaches inside me again and he grunts.
“It’s there, Lor. It’s trying to play with me.” There is amusement in his
voice and a note of pride. I revel in it, feeling his magic twin with mine,
their cadence thrumming together like a perfectly tuned symphony.
“We’re going to do this together. We’re going to grab hold of that wall
and pull. When you feel it crack, you need to be ready. We may only get a
moment. But when it opens, concentrate on casting whatever is in there out
towards that pillar.”
He tightens his hold. “Can you do that, Heart Queen?”
“I don’t know.” I lift my head and stare at the empty space in front of me.
“Can you do it, Heart Queen?” he repeats, his voice low and rumbling.
“I can do it,” I say, trying to mimic his confidence.
“Yes, you can. You’re going to do this because you are the strongest
fucking woman I’ve ever met. Because you’re a queen without her crown
and it’s time to take it back. Do you hear me?”
I nod, a strange feeling twisting in my chest at his words. “I hear you.”
He says nothing else as his magic braids through mine. Both threads are a
strange puzzle that fits together but doesn’t quite match. His magic is round
and soft and languid, while mine is jagged and crisp, full of hard edges. Yet
there’s a harmony they find together, like they understand one another.
“Concentrate,” he says as our magic delves into that cavity in my chest
where my locked power is trapped.
We pry at the edges that are fused together, but for a hairline crack that’s
so close to freedom I can almost taste it. I groan as we dig deeper. It doesn’t
hurt exactly, but it feels like something is rummaging around in the meat of
my organs. A pressure or a presence that’s going to split me open.
“Are you okay?” Nadir whispers, his face pressed to my ear, his grip on
me tight.
I nod. “Yes. Keep going.”
We work together, pulling and pulling, and then I feel it. The barest shift,
so slight I might have missed it if I weren’t concentrating with every ounce
of my will.
“It’s working,” I say. We keep going, pulling and pressing, trying to coax
slivers of movement. Again, there’s the barest shift and I gasp, gritting my
teeth so hard I feel it to the back of my skull.
A little more, and another shift, and then it happens.
A crack. An opening splits and pain shoots through my body as I cry out,
but I don’t let go, plunging into that cavity, pushing through it until
suddenly a web of red lightning shoots from my fingers and slams into the
empty beam of light. It flashes, turning into a pulsating column of fiery
crimson.
Then it’s there.
The Heart Crown.
It hovers in the center, spinning slowly, the blood-red stone winking in
the light.
“Ah!” I cry out before the opening inside my chest slams shut, the
lightning stuttering and the column of light flashing out. “No!” I scream and
lunge for the Crown, worried we’re about to lose it. But the Crown is still
there, plunging to the ground. I leap, but I’m too slow. Nadir goes for it,
faster than an arrow, and snatches it from the air.
He holds it up, his eyes wide and his mouth open. I stare as he hands it to
me, both of us breathing heavily. Tears slide down my cheeks as I take it in
my hands, twisting it and examining it from every angle.
“We did it,” I say.
“You did it, Heart Queen.”
Nadir’s looking at me, not the Crown, with a mixture of emotions that
feel too complicated to name.
“Try it on,” he says, and I shake my head.
“Not without Willow and Tristan. I can’t do this without them.”
“Of course. We’ll head back to the manor first thing in the morning.”
I look back at the Crown, marveling at its sheer presence. It seems to
vibrate with life. I never, ever thought I would be here holding this in my
hands with the remnants of its power running through my blood.
“I felt my magic. It was there!”
“You did. How do you feel?”
“I…feel amazing. I could do this again. Right?”
“Of course you can.”
“Thank you,” I say. “I couldn’t have done that without you.”
The brilliant smile he gives me then flicks on a bright light that I’ve been
trying to drown in darkness since the day we met, blinding me with its
force.
Without thinking about it, I stride forward, grab him behind the neck and
pull his face towards mine, kissing him fiercely. He grunts and wraps his
arms around my waist, meeting my kiss, our mouths sliding together. With
the Crown gripped in my hand, I loop my arms around his neck, and he
kisses me harder, his tongue driving into my mouth before he pulls away,
his eyes wild and his breath shallow.
“What was that for?”
“I just…needed to kiss you.”
He tips his head with a hopeful gleam in his eyes. “Do you need to do it
again?”
“Yes.”
Nadir groans, his hand coming to the back of my head as he bends me
back and kisses me again so deep, I feel it throb everywhere.
“Does what you said still stand? That you’re ready, any time I am?” I
ask.
“Fuck, yes. Of course it does.”
“I need you. I want you.” My voice is a strained whisper.
“I thought you said this was done,” he replies, his intense gaze searing
into me.
“Fuck what I said.”
“Oh, thank gods.”
Then he kisses me again.
Chapter Forty-four

Nadir
“L et’s get out of here,” I say, tugging on Lor's hand. We step over the
shattered remains of the wall, and as soon as we clear the worst of
it, I pull her towards me, gripping the back of her neck, trying to bring her
closer.
“Gods, you make me crazy, Lor. I’m going to fuck you until you have to
beg me to stop.”
I hoist her up, wrapping her legs around my waist. Zerra, she feels so
perfect against me. I carry her down the dais and press her against the pillar
next to where we slept last night, my mouth burning hot kisses down her
neck. I slide my hands into the opening of her sweater, preparing to tear it
off her, when she tenses.
“Don’t,” she cries out. “That’s the only one I packed.”
I give her a wicked smile, dropping her to the ground before I yank up
the hem, and toss it away.
“Fine, this time, I’ll take it off properly, but next time I’m tearing every
last stitch off you.”
I don’t give her the chance to respond as I capture her mouth with mine.
She tugs at the hem of my tunic, and I lift my arms, desperate to feel her
hands on me. I was so worried I’d fucked this up forever. That she was
going to hold to what she said about this never happening again. Should I
stop and make sure she knows what she’s doing? Fuck, I want this so much.
I can’t. She’s mine, and this was always inevitable. I will never, ever let her
go.
She tosses my shirt in a pile with her sweater and then I grab her waist,
lifting her up again so I can back her against the pillar before I grind my
cock into her stomach. I’m so hard it’s painful, but it’s the most delicious
sort of ache.
She lets out a breathy moan as my hips thrust against hers, and I suck on
her neck. She tastes so fucking good I want to devour her. My hands slide
up her ribs and then cup her breasts. They fit in my hands like they were
meant for me. I knead them and pinch her nipples hard enough to make her
gasp, the sound shooting straight to my cock.
“I’m going to fuck you, Heart Queen. You’re going to ride me until you
come so hard you see stars.”
“Yes,” she whispers. “Oh gods, yes.”
She peers up at me with those dark brown eyes that always pull me under
before I lift her away from the pillar, gripping her ass in my hands. Carrying
her over to our haphazard pile of sleeping bags, I lay her down and stretch
over her before I kiss her hard and deep, hoping she understands the
message I’m trying to lay at her feet like a trail of rose petals.
My tongue drives into her mouth as I rub my cock between her thighs. I
can smell how wet she is, and it’s driving me to the edge of control already.
“Nadir,” she begs. “Please.”
Fuck, I love it when she says my name like that.
“What do you want?”
My hand slides down her throat and chest, between her breasts and down
her stomach as I reach for the button on her leggings. I flick them open and
slide my hand past the fabric, stopping just short of her pussy. “What do
you want?”
“Touch me,” she says. “Do everything you promised.”
I want to shout out a thank-you to Zerra. Attempting to control the
tremble in my limbs, I smirk and then slide my hand lower, my gaze pinned
with hers. When I find the slick wetness of her pussy, I groan. “Gods,
you’re so wet.”
She closes her eyes, her thighs falling open while she grips my wrist,
urging me on. As if she’d ever need to ask for anything from now until the
day I die. I slide my finger against her smooth wet skin, my senses
exploding at the thought of getting my tongue on her again. I can’t wait to
taste her and lap up every last drop.
“Zerra,” I say, breathing against her throat. I’m doing everything I can to
hold myself back. I want this to last forever. Until the sun burns out and the
mountains crumble to dust. She moans with pleasure, and the sound is
fucking music to my ears.
“Beg me, Lor, beg me to touch you.”
“Please,” she whimpers. “Touch me, please.”
A growl rumbles in the depths of my chest as I slide a finger into her.
Fuck, she’s so hot and tight. My cock throbs in anticipation.
“Yes,” she cries out, her hips lifting to meet my hand as I circle her clit
with my thumb. How I love watching her come undone for me like this.
“That’s it,” I whisper. “Fuck my hand, Lor.”
Her back arches, her breasts thrusting up. But I need her to be naked. I
need to see all of her. After pulling my hand out, I get on my knees and
hook my fingers into her waistband. “Are these your only pair, too?” I ask,
pissed off at her lack of clothing.
“Yes!”
“Next time, pack more clothes.”
“We were in a hurry,” she snaps, and I grin.
“I love it when you’re angry with me.”
Her nostrils flare in irritation, and she has no idea how irresistible she is
when she’s like this. I snarl and tug on her pants, dragging them down her
legs with jerky movements. My hands won’t work right because I’m so
wound up. I pull off her boots and toss everything away, and then I sit back
and stare at her. I can’t get enough air. Pushing my hair out of my face, I let
out a ragged breath.
“You are so fucking beautiful.”
Her open gaze is raw with an emotion I want to claim as my own. The
scars that mark her body fire an acute rage for everyone who’s ever hurt her,
but they also prove just how unbelievably brave she is.
I run a hand up the side of her calf and then her thigh, tracing every line
and curve with the reverence of a holy disciple. I’m hungry and wild for
her. She grabs my wrist and tugs me to her.
“I need you inside me. Now.”
Those are the best words I’ve ever heard in my life. I crack into a
devilish smile, but I have no intention of giving her what she wants just yet.
Instead, I press my hands to the insides of her thighs.
“Beg me, Lor. You kept shutting me out. Now it’s time to earn it.”
“Asshole. I hate you,” she says, and I smile.
“Fuck, I get so hard when you say that.”
“I can keep calling you names if that’s what you prefer,” she says with a
challenge in her eyes. That, too, makes my blood simmer like I’ve been
dropped in boiling oil.
“Call me whatever you want, Inmate.”
“Nadir,” she growls with impatience and gods, I’m enjoying this. I pick
up her foot, kissing the inside of her ankle.
“That is actually my name, sweetheart.”
Her eyes flash and she might be one second from leaping up and biting
out a chunk of me, which has my dick growing even harder.
“The thing is,” I say, making conversation like she’s not lying before me
naked and waiting like a buffet. I kiss her calf, sucking on her soft skin. She
trembles and I watch with satisfaction as her mouth pops open. After a
glance at her wet pussy, I resist the urge to smother her with my mouth. “I
can’t decide if I want to fuck you hard and fast, or take my time and draw
this out as long as possible.” She whimpers and I meet her gaze with a
mischievous smile. “Either way, we’re not leaving here until I’ve done
both. Multiple times.”
I kiss the inside of her knee, propping her ankle on my shoulder and
sliding my hand down the outside of her thigh. Her head falls back with a
moan that sounds like part desperate plea and part surrender.
“Tell me you’re mine,” I say, and her head snaps up. I can’t read what’s
in her expression, but she has to understand what I’m beginning to suspect.
Lor didn’t just drop into my life by chance. None of this is a coincidence.
It’s destiny. We were made for each other. What we have goes deeper than
lust. Deeper than love.
“Never,” she counters, and my heart seizes. “This is just sex, remember?”
My hand tightens around her ankle, the other one sliding up the inside of
her thigh as she shivers under my touch. I know she feels this, too. She has
to.
I lean over her. “Trust me. You’re mine. Say it.”
But something cracks.
Her eyes darken and she shakes her head, her lips rolling together. Her
ankle jerks, but I hang on, desperate to cling to whatever I sense is about to
crumble away.
“Let go of me.” There’s no playfulness in her expression anymore.
“Lor—”
“No. Stop. This was a mistake.”
Those words slice deep, my heart carving into ribbons as I finally release
my hold. Now she’s getting up, retrieving her clothing and stuffing her feet
back into her leggings.
“What’s the matter?” I ask with bewilderment, but she refuses to look at
me. “What did I do?”
She picks up her discarded tunic and tosses my shirt at me. “Put that back
on.”
“Lor!” I grab her arm, but she yanks it away.
“I’m not yours! I am mine!“ She’s shaking, her entire body glistening
with a sheen of sweat.
Gods, what have I done? I pushed her too hard. I was too fucking
impatient. She has a lifetime of shit to work through, and I need to back off.
“I won’t be anyone’s ever again. Do you understand me? I don’t want
this. I shouldn’t have kissed you. I’m sorry. That was a mistake.” She yanks
her tunic over her head and then drops to her knees, rearranging the
blankets. She still won’t look at me. “It won’t happen again. I got carried
away with my magic and the Crown…”
“It’s okay,” I say.
Her gaze flicks up to me for a fraction of a second before she looks away
again and nods. She scrubs a tear from her cheek with the sleeve of her arm
and then lies down on her bedroll, curling up, so her back is towards me.
I stand there with my shirt still balled in my fist, staring at her. She looks
so small and scared right now, only a shadow of the ferocious woman I
know she is. I did this to her.
Is this over? Does she just need space and time? Whatever it is, I won’t
push her again. Or at least I’ll try.
She sniffs and rubs her cheek again, but still doesn’t turn my way.
Finally, I pull my shirt over my head and then stretch on to my own
bedroll. I stare at her back, wishing she would just talk to me. Or hold my
hand like she did last night. That would be more than enough right now.
“Lor?” I venture, but she doesn’t answer. She just hugs her arms tighter
and curls into herself even further. Holding in my sigh of dejection, I vow
to give her the space she needs. I’ve waited this long for her to come into
my life, and I’ll wait for her forever if that’s what it takes.
Turning on to my back, I tuck an arm under my head and stare at the
starry sky as I listen to Lor’s soft breaths and sniffles, desperately wishing I
could ease her pain.
She’s the only thing that’s ever made me feel any sort of true happiness.
Somehow, she’s cracked the hard-worn shell built by my father, and forced
me to feel something other than an eternal need for revenge.
Lor is mine. I’ve never been so sure about anything in my life. I just need
to be patient. Still, I rub at my chest, wondering how I’m not bleeding out
on the floor thanks to the gaping wound in my heart.

I awake to the chirp of birds, their tweets nipping at my troubled dreams. I


blink, the sunlight stinging my eyes, and then my brow furrows. In all the
years I’ve been coming here, I’ve never seen or heard evidence of anything
alive inside Heart, much less a cheerful bird.
I look at Lor, knowing she’s the reason for this. Her queendom is calling
her home. It’s waking up in her presence. My chest tightens at the thought.
When the truth is revealed, it’s going to throw off the entire balance of
Ouranos. She might not realize it yet, but she’s going to have to battle
against more than just my father for what’s hers. But I vow to be there with
her every step of the way.
Even if she never lets me touch her again.
She’s rolled over in sleep and is facing me now. She was having
nightmares last night, and I wanted so badly to hold her, but knew she
wouldn’t welcome that. A line dents the spot between her brows even now,
her memories haunting her.
Her dark hair spills over her shoulders, and I resist the urge to pick up a
lock to hold between my fingers. I look up at the sky that’s just starting to
lighten. We should get going, but I hate to disturb her. I could lie here
forever staring at her, something I’d never get away with if she were awake.
She lets out a sleepy moan and shifts before her eyes slowly peel open.
When she sees me, her gaze holds mine for several long seconds, the
exchange heavy with meaning.
Even if she stopped me last night, those few minutes that I kissed her and
touched her were like surfacing from the bottom of an ocean trench with
stones tied to my ankles. I’ll never forget the sounds she made or the way
she felt against me.
Patience, I remind myself again. I’ll wait forever if I have to. She can
fight me all she wants. She can keep pretending she doesn’t feel it, too, but
eventually she’ll understand.
“Good morning, Heart Queen,” I say, and she blinks as she pushes herself
up and runs a hand down her face.
“Nadir, about last night—“
“It’s fine,” I say, cutting her off. “You don’t need to apologize.”
She tugs on her lip with her teeth and then nods before she stands up and
starts packing away her bedroll, once again refusing to look at me. I follow
her lead, taking down the tent we never used and packing up the rest of our
things. She picks up the Crown, holding it in her hands, blinking back tears.
“Thank you for helping me last night,” she says, still averting her gaze.
“With my magic.” She finally looks at me. “I couldn’t have done that
without you. All those years, I thought it was gone forever. Your father took
it from me, and you gave it back.”
Then she turns away again, and I want to comfort her so badly my skin
burns.
“Could you do it again? Right now?” I ask instead, and she shakes her
head.
“No, but at least now I know it’s possible. After we get back to my
brother and sister, we’ll figure out what comes next.”
I blow out a breath. “Right. We should get going.”
She gives me a serious look and dips her chin in acknowledgment. We
continue packing up the rest of our belongings. Lor wraps the Crown in a
blanket and carefully nestles it into my pack before I sling it over my
shoulders.
Now she’s biting the inside of her cheek, something else clearly on her
mind.
“What is it?” I ask.
“I want to go check on the women.”
I was afraid of this.
“Lor, no. We can’t. If anyone sees us, my father will know where we are
within hours.”
“I need to know they’re okay,” she says, her eyes shining. “It’s my fault
they’re in your father’s hands.”
I run a hand through my hair and stride over. Her eyes are on the ground,
and I tip up her chin. She doesn’t flinch at my touch, only meeting my gaze
with that fierce determination that makes my knees go weak every single
time.
“It is not your fault. None of this is your doing. My father is the one who
took you from your family. He’s the one who forced you to hide your
magic, and he’s the one who’s taken those women. And now that he must
suspect who you are, he won’t have any more reasons to test them. He’ll let
them go.”
“Don’t patronize me.”
My mouth flattens with the grim truth. He might stop testing them, but he
won’t simply let them walk free, either.
“I need to know they’re okay,” she whispers, and the sound spreads
hairline fissures through my chest.
I think of Heart’s desecrated settlements. Even after all these years, they
bear no name. They’re both permanent and fleeting. Made up of people
who’ve lived on the edge of nothing for centuries. Waiting for their queen.
Waiting for Lor.
How can I deny her this?
I’m about to agree to this wholly terrible idea when the scuttle of a stone
catches my attention. I turn around. Someone’s here. Lor must hear it too,
because she’s looking in the same direction. Our gazes meet and I reach for
her, spinning my magic to form my wings as a prickle of dread creeps down
my spine.
She allows me to scoop her up into my arms and then I look up and what
I see makes my blood run cold. A ring of soldiers wearing the uniforms of
The Aurora stand at the edge of the opening, a dozen crossbows aimed
straight at us.
“Fuck,” I say. “We need to run.”
But I already know we can’t come back the way we came in. The thud of
boot steps is drawing nearer. They have us cornered, and they’re not even
trying to be quiet.
“They found us.”
Lor sucks in a sharp breath, and I place her back on her feet before I take
her hand. “Let’s go.”
We both dash for the opposite end of the throne room, and I catch a
fleeting glimpse of my father’s guards as they burst into the room. We just
barely manage to evade a blast of Aurora light that spears past, hitting the
far wall with a resounding explosion.
There’s no question it’s my father’s magic, and he’s here, coming for us.
Coming for Lor.
We make our way to a staircase and start pounding up the steps that wind
up in circles. Lor takes them two at a time and I keep close behind, the pack
I’m still wearing on my back bouncing.
An ominous rumble follows us up, the sounds of my father’s guards in
pursuit.
“Faster,” I say. “Faster.” She doesn’t look back as she picks up her pace,
keeping one hand on the wall as we spiral higher and higher. From all of
our searching, I know this staircase leads to a flat section of the roof. If
we’re fast enough, maybe we can escape from there.
Lor stumbles, crying out as she misses a step. Her knees slam against the
stone and she grunts, clearly holding in a scream of pain. Nearly tripping
over her, I stop to help her up. She’s already struggling to stand, and it’s
then I realize how hard she’s shaking. I can’t blame her. If my father gets
his hands on her, then it’s over for both of us.
I shove my hands under her armpits and lift her back on her feet, keeping
one arm around her waist as we hobble up the stairs while I half carry, half
drag her up. The fabric of her leggings is ripped, exposing a pair of scraped,
bloody knees, but she doesn’t complain as she trudges forward, breathing
heavily.
The sounds behind us are growing louder, the closer they get.
Finally, we reach the top of the staircase and shove open the rotted door.
Any locks or handles are long gone, giving us no way to bar the exit. Not
that it would be any use against the king.
“Come on!” I yell, taking her hand, once again whirling out my magic
into my wings so we can try to escape. But just as I’m about to pick her up,
a rope of blue light wraps around my legs and I trip, careening forward and
catching myself at the last minute.
“Nadir!” comes a voice that sends a shudder through my limbs. I spin
around to find my father, surrounded by a contingent of his guards. “Stop.
You can’t run from me. Just hand her over, and we can be done with this.”
“Get behind me,” I say to Lor, my eyes never leaving the king. She does
as I ask, shielding herself, one of her hands gripping my upper arm.
“You can’t have her!” I shout across the roof, and my father smirks.
Gods, I want to walk over there and rip out his heart, but my first priority is
getting Lor the fuck out of here.
He saunters forward, one slow, arrogant step after another. “Who will it
be, then? This girl or your mother? Or perhaps your sister?”
“You wouldn’t dare touch Amya,” I snarl. He wouldn’t. I have to believe
that. He’s been using my mother’s safety to control me my entire life, and
it’s always worked. What I have to understand is that at some point, he’s
going to force me to make a choice I know will haunt me through eternity.
“But what if I already have?” he asks, tipping his head. I can practically
feel Lor reacting behind me, her body stiffening and her fingers tightening
on my arm. I know she’s worried about her siblings.
“You’re lying,” I say.
Gods, I hope he’s lying. He’s just trying to get to me. He can’t have
found them.
“Are you willing to take that chance?”
He takes another step, and I hold up my hand. “Don’t come any closer.”
The wind is picking up, the sky darkening as thunderclouds roll
overhead. I have to take the chance because of who Lor is and what I think
she’s capable of. If she ends up in my father’s hands, I fear for the future of
everything and everyone.
I shuffle back and Lor moves with me, her hand still clutched to my arm
so tight her nails dig in.
That’s when my father raises a hand and a spear of emerald green light
explodes in our direction. She ducks as I counter his magic with a red blast
that spreads out, forming a shield. My father’s magic dissipates against it,
but before I have the chance to go on the offensive, he sends out another
blast of light. I notice then his guards are closing in, corralling us towards
the edge of the roof and the perilous drop below, their crossbows aimed
with deadly precision.
The king continues firing off more strings of magic, and I deflect them,
but just barely. His magic is stronger than mine, and I will only be able to
resist for so long. I can tell he’s holding back because he wants to remind
me he can best me without having to tap into the depths of his power. But I
hang on.
For Lor and her family. For my mother and for Amya. For everyone in
Ouranos who has no idea they’re counting on me right now.
“Nadir,” my father grits out, clearly starting to lose his patience. “Enough
of this!”
That’s when he strikes with the full force of his power. Thick bands of
light shoot out, burning through my shield and then surrounding me. He
closes his fist, and his magic tightens, strangling me like I’m wrapped in
iron chains. I struggle against it, but it’s no use.
“Lor,” I choke out. “You have to run.”
There’s nowhere for her to go, though, and we all know it. My legs
buckle as my father’s magic continues to squeeze, my arms pinned
uselessly to my sides.
“Lor,” I whisper as I fall to my knees. My father lifts his other hand, and
it’s then I know it’s over. The entire future I’ve been constructing in my
head is gone before it even started. I can’t bear to think about what he’s
going to do when he gets his hands on her. I want to scream and lash out at
the injustice of it.
I just found her, and now she’s being taken far too soon.
There’s another squeeze of pain, my lungs compressing on the verge of
collapse, before a blinding red flash streaks across my vision. I suck in a
breath, waiting for the inevitable strike of death, but then lightning—red
and crackling and humming with electricity—forks down from the sky and
slams into the stone floor.
It tears the roof apart, sending my father and his soldiers flying. The
magic caging me in releases, and I wait on my hands and knees, sucking in
deep breaths, coughing and choking as my lungs fill with air.
When I look up, I’m too surprised to speak at the sight before me. My
father and his guards are now surrounded by a massive dome made of
sparking crimson lightning. I turn to look at Lor, who’s staring at her hands
before she looks up at me.
“I don’t know what happened,” she says with awe as I struggle to my
feet.
“That’s my girl,” I whisper.
“Nadir!” comes my father’s voice and I turn back.
He sends out a blast of magic against Lor’s barrier, but all it does is
ricochet off the inside, arrowing right into the chest of one of his guards,
who collapses in a heap. My father’s expression turns to thunder, his fist
clenching like he wants to punch a wall through it.
“Don’t do this!” he shouts, his voice cracking. The sound of it wills me
into temporary stillness. It’s the only time in my life I’ve ever heard him be
anything less than one hundred percent in control of himself. “You don’t
understand what she is!”
“Nadir!” Lor says. “I don’t know how long that’s going to hold. I think
we should go.”
I nod slowly as my gaze hooks into my father’s. Neither of us moves, and
it’s at that moment I know I can never go back. While I’ve openly rebelled
against the king my entire life, he’s always believed I was ultimately on his
side. He thinks he knows exactly how to bring me to heel, and I’ve always
used this blind spot to my advantage.
But as he stares at me now, I see the understanding that settles in his
eyes.
Finally, he knows that I’ve never been on his side. That everything I’ve
worked for has been with the goal to destroy him. Today, a battle line has
just been drawn. He will hunt me now to the ends of the earth. Do whatever
he can to crush me before I can get to him.
The corner of my mouth quirks up in a dry smile because I have the
Heart Queen and she’s on my side. No matter how much she might hate me,
she will always hate him more. Then I lift up my hand and touch my fingers
to my forehead, offering my father a mock salute before I spin on my heel
and race for Lor.
Without breaking my stride, I scoop her up, cradling her against me as
my wings erupt. I launch us into the air and, with a burst of speed, send us
tearing across the sky.
Chapter Forty-five

Lor
B urying my face into his chest, I tremble as Nadir wraps his arms
around me. That was too close. I can’t stop replaying what the king
said about Amya. Did he find the manor? Are they all dead or worse? I
sense Nadir is having similar thoughts because we say nothing as he holds
on to me tight and we make our way back to the manor.
As we fly through the sky, I wonder where all of this ends.
It’s only now I truly comprehend the overwhelming enormity of what I’m
trying to accomplish. There is nothing left of the home I don’t even know.
Of this figment of my mind that existed only in a dream. It was a story my
mother told us as she tucked us in at night. I can barely remember her face
anymore, her features blurred and distorted.
The only true memory I have is that our parents loved us. That I know for
sure. But nothing else was real. They tried to give us a safe and happy
home, but it was only an illusion with all the permanence of wet tissue. A
thin cloak draped over the fear that chased them every day of their lives.
Their days were always limited, and it was only a matter of time before
someone, be it the Aurora King or another ruler in Ouranos, came
knocking.
As we hurtle through the air, I barely register our surroundings. It doesn’t
feel like much time passes before I catch sight of the Void and the majestic
range of mountains that border the northern edge of The Aurora looming far
in the distance.
Nadir’s face is drawn with his lips pressed together, a conflict of
emotions brimming in his eyes. They swirl with pink and violet and green,
and I sense there are so many things he needs to say. He doesn’t voice them,
though, instead turning back to stare out over the horizon.
I’m not sure how we’ll ever get past what happened last night. After he’d
helped me with my magic, I was so alive. So powerful. My blood was on
fire, and he’d never looked more beautiful. I wanted him. Every part of me
had wanted him.
But then he had to try to claim me as his, and I can’t allow that. He can
talk about his possessive Fae nature all he wants, but I’m not a prize for him
to stake his flag. I already belonged to the Aurora King for twelve long
years. And then Atlas tried to cage me, too.
I will never belong to anyone ever again.
He will never have my heart.
Before long, we’re within view of the manor house. Nadir descends into
the Void, depositing us onto a path worn into the forest floor. He’s breathing
heavily, and he leans against a tree, his eyes closing and his head falling
against it.
“Are you okay?” I venture, approaching him, resisting the urge to touch
him, always fighting the need. Eventually, this twisted tangle of feelings for
him will fade. “Nadir?”
He opens his eyes and looks at me, nodding his head. “I’m fine. Just
tired.”
“You didn’t stop this time. You should have taken a rest.”
“We don’t have time for that. We have to keep moving,” he says, pushing
himself away from the tree and stalking past me. “Come on.”
Without another word, we head down the path and wind our way through
the trees.
“What about your father?” I ask, breaking the silence.
A shadow falls over Nadir’s expression. “It doesn’t change anything. He
already knew we were hiding something.”
“Do you really think he found them? Should we have come back here?”
He shakes his head and pins me with a fierce look. He doesn’t say what
I’m sure we’re both thinking. That we have to know if they’re all okay
before we move on.
“No. I’m sure he was bluffing.” The words are confident, but they sound
forced. Pushing a slow breath through my nose, I nod my head.
A moment later, there’s a howl in the distance and two white blurs burst
from the foliage. Morana and Khione streak towards us, barking loudly.
Nadir drops into a crouch and wraps an arm around each of their necks,
nuzzling his face into their thick fur. “I missed you girls, too,” he says
fondly, and the warmth in his voice burns in my chest.
Surely if the dogs are here, then everyone else is okay? Or are they trying
to warn us?
When he’s done, he stands and the dogs make their way over, circling my
legs and trotting alongside as we continue our way back to the manor.
After we traverse a few more bends, the top of the house comes into
view. Everything appears fine, the manor intact, and I whisper a prayer to
Zerra on my lips. Please let them all be okay.
When we arrive at the gate, he unlocks it and holds it open. I stand before
the doorway, the moment resting heavy on my shoulders.
“Ready?” Nadir asks, and I shake my head.
“Not really.”
His mouth forms a grim line before he opens the door, and we step into
the quiet hallway. I’m about to call out when I hear a screech, and Willow
comes flying down the stairs.
“Lor! You’re okay!” She crashes into me and wraps me in her arms.
“Zerra, we’ve been so worried.”
“Oh gods,” I say, squeezing her tight and willing my legs not to crumple
under me.
Amya, Mael, Hylene, and Tristan also enter the foyer, the rest
approaching from another room. They’re all here and alive and it’s right
then, the tight band of worry cinching my ribs loosens. They’re okay. The
king was lying.
I meet my brother’s gaze.
“Did you find it?” he asks with no small amount of hope in his voice.
With the Crown tucked inside Nadir’s pack, I suddenly become aware that
the time has come. Tristan and Willow are safe, and there are no more
excuses left. I clasp the necklace at my throat, feeling the pulse that beats
within it.
“We found it.”
Tristan’s eyes shine as he strides over and envelops me in a hug. “What
was it like?” he whispers into my hair.
“It was…home, Tris. It’s a mess, and it’s all in ruins, but it was home,
and I can’t wait to show it to you.”
He squeezes me tighter, and we stay that way for a few more moments
until someone snaps their fingers in my ear.
“This is very touching,” Mael drawls. “But can we get on with this? You
do remember you have a murderous king searching for you?”
Tristan pulls away and snarls at Mael. “Fuck off, asshole.”
“He found us,” Nadir says grimly, and as we all make our way towards
the large living room at the back of the house, he fills them all in on our
encounter, including the way my magic reacted when the king attacked.
When he’s done, Mael eyes me from head to toe.
“So any chance the king thought he might be mistaken about who you are
is now gone.”
“I think so.”
Nadir drops the pack from his shoulders, and I immediately dig into it,
pulling out the Crown. There is a collective hush through the room as I
unwrap it and hold it up. Everyone moves closer, as if drawn to its center of
gravity.
“It’s chipped,” Mael says, frowning. “The stone there. Does that mean
it’s broken?”
The back side of the large stone indeed has a piece cut out, almost as
though someone tried to hide it. My siblings and I share a look, knowing
the time has also come to reveal the final hand we have left to play.
“It’s okay. Lor has the rest of it in that locket,” Nadir says, and I whirl on
him. He stands against the wall, arms crossed and one ankle over the other,
a smug gleam in his eyes.
“How did you know that?”
“You’re constantly touching that necklace.” He unfolds himself and
strides over, lowering his mouth to my ear, so only I can hear him. “You
can’t keep secrets from me, Inmate. I see you.”
I pin him with a furious glare and crack open the locket, revealing the
small red jewel inside.
“How did you manage to hang on to it all these years?” Amya asks, her
eyes wide.
“We had to get creative,” I say. “This thing has passed through both me
and Willow more times than I can count.”
“Disgusting,” Mael says, wrinkling his nose, and I offer him a bleak look.
“We did what we had to,” Willow says, taking it from my hand. “There
were so many times we came close to losing it. When Lor disappeared, I
thought it was gone forever.”
Willow tries to hand it back to me, but I look at Tristan. “You do it,” I say
to him. “Neither of us would have survived this long without you.”
“Lor—”
“Please. I want you to. I may be the Primary and this Crown may sit on
my head, but there will never be a day that you and Willow aren’t just as
important to Heart. You are its keepers, too. You’ve held this dream even
longer than I have.”
Tristan nods and takes it from Willow. With the Crown still in my hands,
he presses it to the larger red stone. The silver band warms, glowing
brightly before it dims, the jewel pieces now fused together as though it was
always whole.
“Do you think mother knew what it really was when she told us to
protect it?” Willow asks, and Tristan and I both shake our heads.
I feel Nadir’s gaze on me, and I look back at him. He tips his head, his
eyes swirling with color as the corner of his mouth lifts.
“It’s time, Heart Queen. Let’s unleash hell on my father.”
Everyone is silent as I place the Crown on my head. It’s heavier than I
thought it would be, maybe weighed down with centuries of expectation.
I close my eyes, waiting to feel its power. Waiting for it to speak to me
like the Torch and Mirror.
“Reach for your magic,” Nadir says, and I try to mimic what we did in
the castle.
Nothing happens.
My eyes open to find six sets of curious eyes watching me. “I don’t feel
anything,” I say, panic edging my voice. “I don’t feel anything.”
Nadir’s hands circle my shoulders from behind. “It’s okay. Be calm. Try
again.”
I nod and take a deep breath, trying to quiet my pulsing heart. I do as he
asks, reaching for that distant power I can’t quite grasp. In my head, I’m
screaming at the Crown to wake up. To hear me.
Please, help me. Please.
But there’s nothing. It may as well be a useless hunk of metal.
With a cry of rage, I pull it off my head. “It’s not working!”
I look at the faces watching me, and it’s clear no one else knows what to
make of this.
“Nadir, what do we do?”
“Fuck,” he says, running a hand along the back of his neck. “I don’t
know. I was so sure this would work.”
“But you always have a plan,” I say, feeling everything slipping away.
“I don’t, this time.” His expression is bleak, and I sink into the nearest
chair, dropping my face into my hands, tears already streaming down my
face.
“What are we going to do?” This time I look at my brother, who seems
equally perplexed.
“Try again,” he says. “Maybe you just need one more try. You did it
earlier with the king.”
“He’s right,” Nadir says. “What happened there?”
“I don’t know. I just saw what he was doing to you and I reacted…” I
trail off.
When the king was hurting Nadir, I’d never felt such visceral rage in my
life. I’ve always wanted to kill that monster, but right then, my hate and my
loathing fossilized into something that burned like acid poured over an open
wound. I would have done anything at that moment to protect Nadir, and
that thought settles uncomfortably over my shoulders.
The mood around the room is solemn.
“There has to be something we can do,” Amya says, pacing with her
hands on her hips. “There must be some way to unlock your magic.”
“What do you suggest?” Mael says, his voice tight. “We’re putting a lot
of faith in an object that no one has seen in hundreds of years. What if it’s…
dead?”
I turn it in my hands. “It’s not. I can feel it. It’s how I found it in the
Heart Castle. It’s alive. Maybe it’s just asleep.”
“It needs your magic,” Nadir says. “It needs you to wake it up.”
I shoot him a look. “It only worked because I was desperate. We can’t
rely on that. I can’t beat your father if I can’t control it.”
Everyone in the room falls silent, lost in their own thoughts. I get up and
wander to the window with the Crown clutched in my hand. The room faces
south, towards the rest of Ouranos. Evening has fallen, and the sky is
turning black, faint shimmers of colors streaking across the sky.
South. Of course.
How could I have forgotten?
“The Mirror.” I spin around as everyone turns to me. “The Mirror said
when I found the Crown, I should come back, and it would have a gift for
me. What if this is it?”
They all exchange wary glances. I’d never considered how I would get
back to the Mirror, only that I had to.
“It said that? You never told me,” Nadir says. I give him a look that
suggests now is really not the time to discuss what I have and haven’t kept
from him.
He moves past it, rubbing his chin with a hand. “It’s possible.”
I let out a long, slow breath. “Then that’s it. We have to go back to the
Sun Palace.”
“How are you going to do that?” Mael asks. “Atlas is still hunting for
you.” He points to Nadir. “And he banned you from Aphelion. You can’t
just waltz in there and ask to visit his throne room.”
“We’ll go,” Tristan says, and Willow nods her agreement.
“And me, too,” Amya adds. “I’ve always been on Atlas’s good side.”
Nadir growls. “That’s because he wants to fuck you.”
Amya rolls her eyes. “I can handle myself, big brother.”
“It has to be me,” I say. “The Mirror said it had a gift for me.” I look at
everyone, daring them to argue. This is my fight, and no one is leaving me
behind.
“Then I’m going, too,” Nadir says.
“So we’re all sneaking in,” Mael says, running a hand down his face.
“This is going to be a disaster.”
“Not if we have a plan,” I snap.
“Do you have one?”
“No. Not yet. But we’ll figure something out. We have to.”
Again, we share a round of wary looks.
“Maybe we can get Gabriel to help us,” I muse, and Nadir snorts. “What?
Why is that funny?”
“Gabriel can’t help you, Lor.”
“He tried to. Sort of,” I say, somewhat defensive of my old warder who
wasn’t exactly my friend but felt like he could have been, had our
circumstances been different.
“Lor, Gabriel is essentially a slave. He can’t disobey Atlas even if he
wanted to.”
I frown. “What do you mean?”
“The wings. Those aren’t natural. The warders are bred specifically for
the purpose of serving the king. They’re bound to him for life and have
little autonomy of their own.”
It’s monstrous, but I realize this explains Gabriel’s erratic behaviour.
“That’s why he was nice to me one moment and…”
“A complete ass the second?” Nadir asks. “Well, part of that is just his
sparkling personality, but yes, his primary duty is to protect his king, and
nothing can stand in the way of that.”
“He’s bound for life?”
Nadir nods. “Unless Atlas chooses to release him, but he would never do
that. He’s far too obsessed with his own sense of self-worth and his meager
grasp of power. The Sun Court has never been the same since your
grandmother nearly destroyed Ouranos.” I ponder Nadir’s words, feeling a
strange melancholy for Gabriel. “At any rate, we can’t rely on him.”
“I have friends there.”
“Former Tributes,” Mael says. “Nope. They’re too closely watched.”
Everyone goes quiet again and Nadir sighs. “I don’t want to linger here
much longer. There’s still my father to consider, and sooner or later, he’s
going to find this place too. Heading south would at least buy us some time.
It could take a while for him to think to look for us there.”
“You don’t have to come,” I say. “This isn’t your responsibility anymore.
You helped me get the Crown. We can take it from here.”
Nadir strides over to me, his expression dark. His hands curl at his sides,
and I get the sense he wants to touch me but holds himself back. Instead, he
stops so close that I have to look up to meet his gaze. “What have I told
you? I’m with you until the end. You’re not going anywhere without me.”
My chin rising, I give him a sharp nod. “Okay, then.”
I try not to show my relief. I have no idea how I’ll do any of this without
his help.
“So we’re just winging this?” Mael asks, skepticism dripping from those
words.
Nadir looks at his friend, his expression serious. “So it would seem.”
“We’ll plan on our way there,” Amya adds hopefully, though we can all
hear the doubt in her tone.
“We broke her out of there,” Mael says, gesturing with both hands to his
left, as if we all don’t know that, before he swings his hands to the other
side. “And now you want to bring her back? With a target on both your
backs?”
Nadir tugs on the bottom of his jacket. “It would seem that’s the measure
of it. You in? We’re going to need you.”
Mael tips his head and grins, his dark eyes alight with glee. “You know
I’d never miss the chance to stir shit up. Especially when Atlas is involved.”
Nadir gives him a crooked smile and then looks back at me. “You’re sure
about this? It’s going to be exceedingly dangerous.”
I swallow a knot in my throat. I’m terrified, but this is the only way. “Of
course I’m sure. You think I haven’t handled worse? Besides, you just said
you don’t have any other ideas.”
Nadir tips his head in a gesture of concession, and then he turns to
address the rest of the room.
“Then everyone get some sleep. Tomorrow we head back to Aphelion.
Zerra help us all.”
Chapter Forty-six

Serce

C loris kneeled bent over in her cage, her silver hair ragged and limp.
She’d been refusing any food or water, throwing it at the guards
while screaming to be let out. Serce was sure the priestess was losing her
foothold on reality, especially since she’d also stopped using the latrine,
choosing instead to defile the floor of her cell. Serce stood over her and
wrinkled her nose at the pathetic sight as Cloris lifted her head and snarled.
“If you think this is going to make me let you go, you’re mistaken,”
Serce said, wrapping her hands around the bars. She leaned forward, but
then snapped back as her eyes watered from the stench. They’d been in
Heart for two months now, trying to get Cloris to cooperate. They needed
her to perform the ritual to bond Serce and Wolf, but her patience was
wearing thin.
The only advantage was it had given her time to sidle back into the
queen’s good graces. They had been playing nice ever since Daedra had
learned she was to become a grandmother. Word had been sent to Aphelion
regarding the proposed bonding with Wolf’s sister, and their armies were
headed north. His sister would accept the bond once she was done with her
studies at Maris Academy in eighteen months.
It was all a lie, of course.
Once Serce got her hands on the Crown, she wanted nothing to do with
Atlas or Aphelion. She would have no need of them. Her goal now was to
conquer, not ally. She just needed to ascend and bond with Wolf. Then all of
Aphelion’s army would fall to their knees.
Cloris bared her teeth at Serce, peering through a ragged curtain of grey,
tangled hair. Wolf hadn’t allowed Serce to resort to torture, but this situation
was becoming untenable. She was tired of waiting, and she needed to forge
ahead with her plans before the Sun King arrived. Cloris hissed again, and
Serce wondered how she’d slipped so far into this impression of a wild
animal. Perhaps Cloris had never been playing with a full set of marbles.
Serce rolled her eyes and snapped her fingers, attempting to draw Cloris
back. She wouldn’t be much use in this state. A sharp pain jabbed her ribs
and Serce clutched her stomach, now rounded with their child. The way
Wolf’s face lit up at night when they lay in bed was enough for her to
endure this insufferable discomfort. She would be more than ready to see
the end of this, though.
Cloris opened her mouth, moaning with a high-pitched wail as she
scraped her nails down her face, leaving a set of deep gouges. Gods, Serce
wished she’d just shut up. She rubbed her temple, pain building behind her
eyes. No matter how much progress she’d made with her mother, she still
hadn’t gotten confirmation of when Daedra would finally descend. It was
wearing at every last one of Serce’s nerves.
Spinning on her heel, she made her way to the large tent sitting in the
middle of the clearing. Wolf’s forces had been hiding out here since they’d
arrived, and this, too, was becoming more and more dangerous. Hiding a
group this large was no easy feat. Wolf’s forest magic was doing the heavy
lifting to keep them hidden, but eventually something had to give.
Serce pushed through the flap where Wolf was conversing with his
generals. As always, he took her breath away, his deep brown hair flowing
down his back and his green tunic stretching over his formidable frame. His
wings were folded behind him, and his eyes lit up as he turned to greet her.
She ran a hand over her stomach and stepped inside.
“Ready for dinner?”
Wolf nodded, exchanged a few more words with his generals, and then
strode over to clasp her hand. They headed back outside and stopped when
shouts rose in the distance. A scout came bounding through the trees, her
cheeks red and her chest puffing out.
“Your Majesty,” she said, dropping to her knee, gasping. “The Aurora.
They’re marching this way.”
“What?” Serce asked. “You’re sure?”
The messenger nodded. “Positive.”
“How many?” Wolf asked.
“At least several battalions that I could see. Thousands upon thousands.”
“How far away are they?”
The messenger, finally catching her breath, shook her head. “A day, at
most. Probably less.”
“How did you not see them earlier?” Serce demanded. “How can an army
that size just creep up on you?”
“I don’t know, Your Highness. One minute there was no sign of them,
and then suddenly there they were.”
Serce glowered at the messenger, her lips thinning. Rion had clearly used
some kind of magic to conceal his army. That’s when they heard a wild
cackle from Cloris’s cage. She sat on her knees, her hands gripping the bars
and her face pressed between them. She was laughing maniacally.
“He knows. The king. He knooooows,” she said, and then she cackled
again.
Serce stormed over. “What did you just say?”
Wolf came up behind her, and Cloris looked up at them both, her smile
manic and her eyes rolling.
“He knooows,” she repeated with her fingers pressed to her lips.
“She’s been working with Rion,” Wolf said, his expression tight.
The pain behind Serce’s eye gave a stabbing throb.
“Fuck!” she screamed, balling her fists.
Now Rion and Kyros were compressing them from both sides and she
still didn’t have that Crown. There was no question in her mind Rion wasn’t
here to join with her. He’d played her, and she’d fallen for it. Would
Aphelion choose to ally with Heart if they saw The Aurora was now part of
the equation? Would they retreat or attempt to smother her, too? Serce
couldn’t hold them both off at once, no matter how strong she was.
“Chain her up,” Serce ordered, pointing to Cloris. “She’s coming with us.
We do this tonight. There’s no more time.”
A sharp pain shot through Serce’s back and she groaned, pressing her
hand to it and sucking in several breaths before she straightened.
“Are you okay?” Wolf asked, but she waved him off.
“I’m fine.”
A guard unlocked Cloris’s cage before two more took her by each arm
and dragged her to her feet. She refused to walk, her body remaining limp.
“Gag her,” Serce said and then turned around and stalked back to their
horses. They were due to have supper with her parents, and Serce had
planned to again bring up the subject of the queen’s descension, but the
time had come for more drastic measures.
With Cloris and Wolf’s soldiers in tow, they made their way back to the
city, drawing more attention to themselves than Serce would have liked.
Did her mother know about Rion yet? Had her scouts missed his approach,
too?
They headed for the castle and made their way towards the private dining
room where Serce’s parents waited. Her back was aching now, her stomach
tight. Gods, how she couldn’t wait to get this baby out of her.
She stopped and whirled around. “We need to hide her until the time is
right,” Serce said, pointing to Cloris. “Take her to my wing for now.” The
two soldiers who held the priestess by each arm nodded and then dragged
her away.
“Let’s go,” Serce said, taking Wolf’s hand as two more of his guards
followed closely behind.
They found the room where her parents were already seated, and Serce
did her best to affect a mask of calm. She didn’t want her mother to sense
anything amiss.
“Serce!” her mother exclaimed, coming over to embrace her daughter.
“Are you okay? You look pale!”
Serce inhaled a deep breath as her back spasmed again. “Oof,” she said
as she bent over. “Yes. My back is just hurting today.”
“Come and sit,” her father said, helping her into a chair.
Servants swarmed around them as they brought out the meal, but Serce
had no appetite, either from the pregnancy or stress, she wasn’t sure.
Whatever the case, she could practically hear the drone of Rion’s forces
marching closer, making her queasy. She would rip that bastard apart for
double-crossing her. She picked at her food, feeling both tense and listless
at the same time.
“Serce? Are you okay?” her mother asked. “You’ve been so quiet during
dinner.”
Serce grimaced. “I’m fine. Just tired. The baby.”
“Of course. You should stay off your feet until she comes.”
Serce blinked. “She?”
Her mother smiled. “The Crown confirmed it last night. You’re carrying
a girl, and she will be the next Primary. It predicted she would have an
important destiny to fulfil. One that would shape the very fabric of
Ouranos.”
Warmth bloomed in Serce’s chest at those words. Yes. This was her duty.
Everything she’d fought for and worked for. Wolf grabbed her hand and
squeezed it, and she smiled at him.
She groaned as pain gripped her midsection, bending over before she felt
the strangest sensation release below her waist.
“Your water!” Daedra cried. “The baby is coming!”
Sure enough, Serce's dress was now soaked, fluid collecting at her feet.
No. Not now. She had to finish this first.
“Call the midwife!” the queen shouted, and a flurry of servants burst into
action. Serce moaned as another wave of pain hit her.
“Your Majesty!” One of the Heart Queen’s soldiers came striding in next.
“The Aurora has been seen marching on Heart. They are nearly at our
border.”
Serce watched as her mother’s face went ashen. “What? Why? Now?”
The Heart soldier confirmed all the same facts Wolf’s scout had.
Somehow, Rion had snuck up on all of them. That fucking bastard.
The midwife had also arrived, along with a wet nurse, and was moving
Serce to the settee in the corner of the room. Serce dropped into it and
found her mother standing over her. Wolf kneeled at her side, his hands
clasped around one of her own.
“What did you do?” Daedra asked, her voice low with accusation. “Why
is Rion here with an army?”
“What I had to,” Serce said, wincing in pain. “Let me have the Crown,
Mother. You know it’s the only way to stop him.”
Her mother’s face was hard, her eyes blazing. “You allied with our
enemy?”
“You gave me no choice!”
Daedra swallowed, her throat bobbing. “I would have let you have it.”
“When, Mother? You’ve been dancing around it ever since I spurned
Atlas. I’ve waited long enough.”
“I didn’t think you were ready, and this proves I was right.”
Serce groaned as another contraction wracked her body. “He’ll kill us all
if you don’t descend.”
“Sit back,” the midwife said, her wary glance darting between mother
and daughter. “I need to check your dilation.”
Serce did as she was asked, her skin slicked with sweat. Another
contraction hit her, and she squeezed Wolf’s hand. He leaned up and kissed
her forehead. “It’s okay. I’m right here.” Serce nodded and touched his face
as she winced.
Serce watched from the far end of the room as her mother paced, guards
and advisors coming in and out to speak with her before they left to carry
out her orders.
For the next few hours, Serce labored as night fell on the city. Word had
spread that The Aurora was marching on Heart.
Their army was smaller, and Aphelion was still days away—they might
not arrive in time to provide aid. If they were even willing. They could just
as easily turn around and march in the other direction, abandoning Heart to
its fate, perhaps returning later to pick through the pieces.
Serce lay on the sofa, stripped down to a robe and wearing a thin
nightgown now as Wolf dabbed her head with a cold compress.
“We’re almost there,” the midwife declared, checking on Serce again.
Outside, torches could be seen flickering in the distance as The Aurora
drew nearer and nearer. The city was preparing for attack, but everyone
waiting in this room knew they couldn’t hold off the Aurora King for long.
“What were you thinking?” Daedra finally said, her temper exploding.
She’d been pacing for hours, a dark cloud hanging over her head.
“Daedra,” the king said. “This isn’t the time.”
“It is the time! He’s practically on our doorstep! What was she
thinking?!”
“Give me the Crown, Mother. I’ll bond to Wolf and then we can beat
him. I can beat him.”
Daedra’s eyes filled with tears as she looked at her daughter,
disappointment and regret obvious in her expression. Unwittingly, Serce
had backed them all into this corner. Sure, it hadn’t gone exactly as she
planned, but there was always more than one way to skin a cat.
“You need to start pushing!” the midwife declared then, and Serce
wanted to scream at her for interrupting. But a wave of pain wracked her
body, and she squeezed her eyes closed as she let out a moan.
“It’s coming!” the midwife said. “Push!”
Serce did as the midwife asked while Wolf held her hand and murmured
encouragement. Daedra sat on her other side and did the same. Their feud
was forgotten for this brief moment as they brought the next generation—
the next Primary—into the world.
“Push! Push!”
Serce groaned, and she pushed as hard as she could, when the pressure
finally released.
“It’s a girl!”
Tears ran down her face as her head fell back, and she let out a burst of
triumphant laughter.
“Serce, you are the most incredible woman to walk this earth,” Wolf said
softly, peppering her face with kisses. The baby was bundled up and handed
to Serce, who then passed her to Wolf, her body spent. He looked on the
baby with so much love Serce thought her heart would explode.
But there would be time to enjoy this later, because shouts drew their
attention outside, and Serce could see that Rion’s army was much too close
for comfort now. She struggled to sit up.
“Get Cloris,” she told Wolf. “We need her.”
He nodded and headed for the door with the baby in his arms, opening it
and speaking to his soldiers, who waited outside. He returned to her side,
his eyes glued to the little girl who stared up at him with a pair of big, dark
eyes.
“She looks just like you,” he said, kissing Serce again. They both
admired the baby, and Serce felt something shift in her heart she hadn’t
expected. She loved this child already and would do anything to protect her.
Finally, for the first time, she felt like she could be a mother.
The door banged open and Wolf’s soldiers came in, dragging Cloris
between them. She was hissing and wailing, the last bit of her sanity in
tatters. They let her fall to the ground, where she slammed to her knees. She
wrapped her arms around herself and rocked back and forth, her eyes
glassy.
“What’s going on?” Daedra asked. “Who’s this?”
“Meet Cloris,” Serce said, waving a weak hand. “She’s going to perform
the binding.”
The queen glanced at the feral, half-crazed priestess with a dubious look.
“Are you sure about that?”
A blast outside drew everyone’s attention, their heads swiveling towards
the window. A giant ball of colorful light hung suspended in the air. It was a
message and a warning. Rion wouldn’t wait long to enter the city.
“You need to get the baby out of here,” Daedra said, not addressing
Serce, but speaking to Wolf. “If they break down the gates—“
Her words sliced off with an ominous ring, but they knew what she was
implying. Wolf’s eyes darkened as he peered out the window at the ball of
magic hovering in the sky. Whatever happened tonight, things would get
messy before the dust settled.
Serce and Wolf looked at each other, and she nodded. She saw something
break in his eyes as he nodded, too. Serce would get him back to his child.
She would make sure of it. It was the only thing he’d ever asked of her.
“Call in your soldiers,” Daedra said, opening the door and gesturing them
inside. “No one will notice one or two of them leaving the city. You must do
this if the Primary is to survive. The wet nurse should travel with them.”
Wolf bent down so Serce could say goodbye. She touched the baby’s
forehead and placed a kiss on her cheek, tears leaking from the corners of
her eyes. Was it possible to love someone this much when she’d only just
met them?
Reluctantly, Wolf handed the swaddled child over to the wet nurse, who
then clutched the baby to her chest. Tears ran down his face, too.
“We’ll come for you soon, little one,” he whispered, and kissed her head
before addressing his soldiers. “Take her to my brother. Tell him to keep her
safe until we come for her.”
“Yes, Your Majesty,” one of them replied.
“As quickly as you can,” Wolf said, casting another glance over his
shoulder.
They were about to leave when Daedra said, “Wait!” She walked over
and undid the chain hanging around her neck. A gold necklace with a red
stone hanging from it. “Something to remember me by, in case we don’t
make it.”
The soldiers tipped their heads and then they left the room, the baby and
the nurse between them. After they’d left, Daedra turned to her daughter.
The atmosphere was tense with sorrow and fear, and so many things yet to
come.
Serce pushed herself to stand, ignoring the pain in her body. She walked
over to her mother. “It’s time.”
“No,” Daedra said. “You’ve lost your way, Serce. I can’t leave Heart in
your hands.”
“You will give it to me,” Serce snarled. “I don’t care if I have to take it
from you.”
“You know it won’t work,” her mother whispered. “You’ll lose
everything.”
“You confirmed our daughter is the next Primary, Mother. The Crown is
already mine.”
Daedra’s eyes filled with fear as she looked at her daughter. “I’d hoped
you were better than all of this. I wasn’t perfect as a mother or a queen, but
I always tried to do my best. And now you’ve brought this destruction on
us.”
Serce let out a deep breath, her patience stretching thinner than gossamer.
“Bring Cloris,” she said to Wolf. “And the Staff.”
She heard him move as he retrieved the bow he’d arrived with, snapping
it out of the casing that concealed it. Serce noticed he moved more slowly
than usual, like he was floating through sap. She would get him back to his
daughter if it was the last thing she did.
Daedra’s eyes swung to the Woodlands Staff and widened. “You planned
this from the very beginning. This is madness. This won’t work.”
“Of course I did, Mother.” She ignored the rest of her mother’s comment
as she stalked towards the queen, who retreated until the backs of her thighs
hit the dining table. Fear, true fear, had entered the queen’s eyes, but Serce
was blind to all of it. She snatched the Crown from her mother’s head,
swelling with the certainty that soon its power would be hers.
“Hold them,” Serce ordered the group of Wolf’s soldiers, who waited
near the door.
While everything had been happening, they’d been surreptitiously
instructed to remove Heart’s forces from the room. Now only The
Woodlands army remained. Serce watched the surprised looks on her
parents’ faces as they were bound in the same type of arcturite cuffs they’d
used on Cloris, before either of them could react.
“Serce!” her mother said. “You would do this to us?”
Serce turned away as Wolf picked Cloris up by the scruff and dragged her
over. She crumpled at their feet in a babbling mess.
Gods, this entire thing had been pointless. Cloris was useless. Serce was
going to have to do this herself. She fumbled around in Cloris’s pocket,
retrieving the book the priestess had been allowed to keep. The priestess
continued to babble, her eyes rolling to show the whites.
Then Serce placed the Crown on her head. The silver felt warm against
her skin, and her throat thickened with emotion.
Finally. After all this time.
Daedra shook her head as a tear slid down her cheek. “Don’t do this,” she
said in a raw whisper. “You’ll doom us all.”
“Remember, it was you who refused to descend.”
The lights in the room dimmed, pitching them into darkness. Rion’s ball
of magic hovered outside, casting them in shadows and the reflections of
violet, emerald, and crimson.
She turned to Wolf, who held the Staff, his expression fierce.
“Are you ready?” she asked, flipping the book open.
Wolf nodded. “Of course, my queen.”
He approached her, and she peered up at him, love bursting in her chest.
No one would ever keep them apart, and together, they’d rule over Ouranos.
He cupped the back of her head with his hand and kissed her. “Let’s do
this so we can kick Rion’s ass and get back to our daughter.”
Serce found herself grinning. Their daughter. They hadn’t even had the
chance to name her. It would be the first thing they’d do when they were all
reunited.
“For our daughter,” she whispered, and he touched her forehead to hers.
“For all of us, Serce.”
She looked down at Cloris, who was still babbling to herself.
“We’ll have to do this ourselves.”
A large bang came from outside, shaking the entire castle. They’d broken
through the gates. Shouts and screams rose as Serce watched from above
while The Aurora army flowed into the city like a stain of ink.
“Hurry,” Wolf said.
Serce flipped to the incantation Cloris had referenced when she’d still
been sane.
“It says we need to repeat it three times while we hold each Artefact.”
She held his hand as she read through the lines one by one:
Forge a bond of sea and sky
That Zerra cannot deny
When their fates are woven and spun
Take these hearts and make them one
The Crown on her head grew warm, crimson lightning sparking up her
arms. Wolf’s staff glowed brightly as green ribbons of smoke swirled
around him. Their eyes met, and she’d never felt stronger or more
connected to anyone in her life.
As she read the lines again, red and green met and twinned together,
forming a single line of magic that glowed more brightly than the sun. As
her lightning sparked, green smoke coalesced around them, converging into
a show of their immense power.
It was the most beautiful thing she’d ever seen.
Another blast rocked the room, nearly throwing them off balance as the
sounds of battle grew outside. They were coming.
The Aurora King was coming and Serce knew he’d come for her first.
She read the incantation for a third time.
Forge a bond of sea and sky.
Her power grew, swelling in her chest and her limbs.
That Zerra cannot deny.
Crimson bolts flashed through the room, spearing from the ceiling to the
floor.
When their fates are woven and spun.
Green smoke swirled around them as her power swelled and swelled.
Wolf’s eyes sparkled like emeralds twirling in fire. He looked upon her with
wonder and awe as his wings stretched out behind him.
She had never felt so strong. Magic coursed through her. Rivers of it.
Waves of it. Oceans of it. She was stronger than anyone would ever be.
She closed her eyes and tipped her head up, inhaling a deep breath before
she looked back at Wolf and their eyes locked.
Power. Strength. Destiny. Mates.
Yes, this is what she’d been waiting for all along.
She began the fourth line just as the castle shuddered again, the windows
cracking and smashing apart in a shower of glass.
“Take these hearts and…”
The magic kept filling her as she said each word, one by one, wanting to
prolong this moment for just another second. The moment when she’d
finally take everything she’d ever wanted. She gripped Wolf’s hand with all
of her strength and said the last three words.
“…make…them…one.”
As her voice fell silent, white noise flashed in her ears, a high-pitched
whine that spiraled up and up just as a bright bolt of crimson lightning
struck the ground between them, hurling them back and then…
The world shattered, and there was nothing but darkness.

Read Chapter 28 from Nadir's POV (yes, it's the hate BJ scene) when you
sign up for my newsletter at nishajtuli.com! I hope you enjoy this spicy
bonus content!
Acknowledgments

This whole writing thing has been such an adventure and I can’t even begin
to express how fortunate I feel to be on it.
Melissa, my writing spouse, I don’t know what I’d do without your
enthusiasm and your humour and just your wild and lovely spirit.
Bria, you’ve become one of the first people I go to when I’ve got another
book done.
Shaylin, I feel like I found a writing soulmate in you. You’re so talented
and brilliant, and I can’t thank you enough for putting your mark on this
manuscript and all the rest.
Ashyle, thank you for your insight and wisdom—you have such a keen
eye for everything.
Emily, thank you for being my sounding board and daily companion.
To Alexis and Alex, thank you for your unending support. The past three
years would have been impossible without you.
To Priscilla and Elayna—thanks for being my last eyes on this book and
for joining me on this journey. I look forward to publishing so many books
next to you in the years to come. And thanks to Rae for your help with the
incantation at the end!
Thank you to the slew of beta readers that helped me make this book
everything it could be: Raidah, Elyssa, Nefer, Suzy, Ashley, Alexis, Catina,
Emma, Rachel, Chelsea, Stacy, Holly, Elaine, Rebecca, and Kelsie.
To the reading community on BookTok and Bookstagram, thank you for
being so enthusiastic and supportive of a brand new author who still had to
prove herself. You’re honestly the ones who made this all possible.
To my mom who was the one who always read books and looked at me
and said “couldn’t you write this?” Yah, I guess I finally did.
To my kids, Alice and Nicky, you are a never ending source of joy in my
life, even when you’re driving me crazy. It’s a good thing you’re cute.
Thanks for being patient with me when I get distracted writing stories in my
head when you talk to me sometimes.
And of course, to my husband Matthew, who’s support and belief in me
has never wavered a single day since we met all those years ago. Thank you
for giving me the space and the freedom to pursue this and for allowing me
to be the dramatic one. I’m not exaggerating when I say I couldn’t do this if
I didn’t have a partner who gets it.
Also By Nisha

Cursed Captors

Wicked is the Reaper

Feral is the Beast (Summer 2023)

Curse of Thorne

To Wake a Kingdom

Artefacts of Ouranos

Trial of the Sun Queen (Book 1)

Rule of the Aurora King (Book 2)

Fate of the Sun King (Book 3, Winter 2023)

Heart of Night and Fire


Heart of Night and Fire (Book 1, September 2023)
About the Author

Nisha is a Canadian fantasy romance author, whose books feature kick ass
heroines, swoony love interests, and slow burns with plenty of heat. She
loves to draw upon her Indian heritage and her love of fantasy to bring her
stories to life, weaving together vibrant and compelling characters, settings,
and plotlines. When she’s not writing or exploring, Nisha can be found
enjoying travel, food, and camping with her partner, two kids, and their
fluffy Samoyed.

Follow Along For More


Website and newsletter: https://nishajtuli.com
TikTok: https://www.tiktok.com/@nishajtwrites
Instagram: https://www.instagram.com/nishajtwrites
Twitter: https://twitter.com/NishaJT
Pinterest: https://www.pinterest.ca/nishajtwrites

You might also like